Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n care_n edition_n great_a 28 3 2.1343 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A50332 A defence of diocesan episcopacy in answer to a book of Mr. David Clarkson, lately published, entituled, Primitive episcopacy / by Henry Maurice ... Maurice, Henry, 1648-1691. 1691 (1691) Wing M1360; ESTC R8458 258,586 496

There are 45 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

have_v meet_v the_o like_a and_o the_o theodosian_a code_n make_v frequent_a mention_n of_o these_o mansion_n l._n 21._o de_fw-fr decur_n magistrate_n be_v appoint_v for_o those_o place_n out_o of_o the_o city_n in_o who_o territory_n they_o be_v claudiopolis_n tottas_n and_o vordis_n be_v say_v to_o be_v town_n or_o mansion_n in_o bythinia_n l._n 119._o de_fw-fr decur_n cod._n theod._n and_o this_o thermae_n be_v mention_v in_o antonin_n itinerary_n in_o the_o way_n from_o tavia_n to_o caesarea_n the_o first_o stage_n and_o one_o elpidius_n a_o bishop_n of_o this_o place_n subscribe_v the_o six_o general_n council_n and_o call_v it_o st._n agapius_n his_o thermae_n in_o the_o second_o galatia_n of_o the_o same_o creation_n be_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o studius_fw-la which_o our_o author_n 39_o author_n prim._n ep._n p._n 39_o produce_v out_o of_o theodorus_n lector_fw-la after_o the_o decease_n of_o another_o who_o preside_v there_o for_o learned_a man_n have_v observe_v long_o ago_o that_o the_o word_n bishop_n shall_v be_v correct_v and_o the_o word_n precedent_n put_v in_o its_o place_n and_o valesius_fw-la in_o his_o note_n upon_o that_o passage_n do_v agree_v to_o the_o amendment_n and_o that_o this_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v do_v only_o from_o conjecture_n and_o the_o seem_a necessity_n of_o sense_n theophanes_n 135._o theophanes_n theoph._n in_o chron._n p._n 135._o and_o nicephorus_n 25._o nicephorus_n niceph._n h._n e._n l._n 16._o c._n 25._o do_v vouch_v it_o the_o same_o misfortune_n of_o faulty_a read_n have_v make_v we_o bishop_n of_o monastery_n here_o in_o england_n and_o it_o be_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n that_o our_o author_n 39_o author_n prim._n ep._n p._n 39_o be_v so_o positive_a that_o in_o britain_n there_o be_v common_o bishop_n in_o monastery_n and_o such_o too_o as_o be_v in_o subjection_n to_o the_o abbot_n of_o the_o convent_n though_o a_o presbyter_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o hereford_n ut_fw-la episcopi_fw-la monachi_fw-la non_fw-la migrent_fw-la etc._n etc._n spelm._n p._n 153._o beda_n l._n 4._o c._n 5._o the_o word_n episcopi_fw-la in_o mr._n wheelock_n edition_n of_o bede_n be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o text_n and_o the_o saxon_a version_n disow_v it_o and_o mr._n wheelock_n ipsi_fw-la wheelock_n deal_v obsecro_fw-la episcopi_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la mss_n i●i_fw-la lege_fw-la ipsi_fw-la in_o his_o errata_n take_v care_n to_o advertise_v the_o reader_n that_o this_o word_n must_v be_v correct_v and_o ipsi_fw-la put_v in_o its_o place_n for_o so_o he_o find_v it_o in_o all_o his_o manuscript_n that_o be_v ipsi_fw-la this_o may_v be_v no_o news_n to_o our_o author_n for_o my_o lord_n bishop_n of_o st._n asaph_n 68_o asaph_n hist_o account_v p._n 68_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o in_o his_o historical_a account_n of_o the_o church_n government_n of_o great_a britain_n but_o chifllet_n in_o his_o late_a 1681._o late_a anno_fw-la 1681._o edition_n of_o bede_n print_v from_o a_o old_a copy_n praef._n copy_n adorandum_fw-la antiquitatis_fw-la optimaeque_fw-la notae_fw-la codicem_fw-la chifl_fw-mi praef._n of_o s._n maximin_n in_o treves_n of_o reverend_a antiquity_n have_v restore_v ipsi_fw-la though_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o the_o emendation_n it_o be_v possible_a that_o in_o this_o book_n the_o word_n ipsi_fw-la may_v be_v write_v at_o length_n i_o have_v see_v some_o manuscript_n copy_n that_o vouch_v this_o emendation_n though_o the_o word_n be_v not_o write_v at_o length_n but_o with_o contraction_n yet_o there_o be_v one_o very_o old_a copy_n of_o the_o cotton_n library_n which_o have_v the_o word_n at_o length_n and_o without_o any_o abbreviation_n that_o put_v a_o end_n to_o all_o further_o criticise_v upon_o this_o passage_n although_o i_o can_v but_o observe_v how_o unhappy_a our_o author_n be_v in_o this_o particular_a who_o in_o confirmation_n of_o that_o multiplicity_n of_o bishop_n which_o he_o vain_o imagine_v be_v once_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v choose_v to_o instance_n in_o a_o time_n when_o there_o be_v indeed_o no_o more_o than_o seven_o bishop_n in_o all_o the_o saxon_a part_n of_o britain_n in_o spain_n itself_o say_v our_o author_n 39_o author_n prim._n ep._n p._n 39_o damium_n be_v a_o episcopal_a seat_n say_v ortelius_n and_o it_o be_v a_o monastery_n in_o isidorus_n and_o honorius_n vnde_fw-la martinus_n episcopus_fw-la qui_fw-la scripsit_fw-la de_fw-fr quatuor_fw-la virtutibus_fw-la cardinalibus_fw-la oriundus_fw-la it_o be_v true_a that_o st._n martin_n call_v the_o apostle_n of_o gallicia_n have_v convert_v theodomir_n king_n of_o the_o suevi_n or_o as_o other_o name_v he_o chararacus_n from_o the_o arian_n heresy_n be_v make_v bishop_n in_o that_o monastery_n which_o he_o have_v build_v but_o that_o he_o have_v no_o other_o diocese_n than_o his_o monastery_n we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v for_o in_o the_o council_n luc._n council_n aerae_fw-la 607._o a._n christi_fw-la 569._o vid._n not._n gar_n loyasae_n in_o conc._n luc._n apud_fw-la lucum_fw-la dumium_fw-la be_v say_v to_o have_v familia_fw-la regius_fw-la belong_v to_o it_o and_o in_o the_o distribution_n of_o diocese_n make_v by_o king_n wamba_n the_o bound_n of_o this_o diocese_n be_v mark_v from_o duma_n to_o albia_n and_o from_o rianteca_n to_o adasa_n when_o this_o st._n martin_n be_v make_v archbishop_n of_o braga_n he_o ordain_v no_o other_o in_o dumium_n but_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a to_o do_v honour_n to_o the_o seat_n of_o so_o great_a a_o man_n they_o may_v perhaps_o think_v for_o some_o time_n to_o appoint_v he_o a_o successor_n in_o dumium_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o subscription_n of_o several_a spanish_a council_n yet_o even_o in_o the_o gothick_n time_n this_o place_n be_v restore_v to_o braga_n for_o in_o the_o 16_o council_n of_o toledo_n felix_n write_v himself_o of_o braccara_n and_o dumium_n as_o vasaeus_n 20._o vasaeus_n vasaei_n chron._n c._n 20._o inform_v we_o from_o a_o m._n s._n copy_n of_o canon_n in_o rodericus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o toledo_n nay_o it_o may_v be_v question_v whether_o there_o ever_o be_v another_o bishop_n of_o this_o dumium_n after_o martin_n for_o luitprandus_fw-la advers._fw-la luitprandus_fw-la luitpr_fw-la advers._fw-la inform_v we_o that_o there_o be_v two_o place_n of_o this_o name_n episcopal_a seat_n one_o in_o asturia_n and_o the_o other_o in_o gallicia_n which_o be_v the_o place_n of_o which_o we_o be_v speak_v but_o to_o give_v this_o instance_n a_o positive_a answer_n a_o monastery_n in_o the_o suburb_n of_o braga_n make_v a_o bishop_n seat_n about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o six_o century_n be_v no_o argument_n of_o primitive_a episcopacy_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a this_o place_n have_v always_o till_o this_o time_n belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o city_n 2._o all_o this_o matter_n be_v extraordinary_a to_o do_v honour_n to_o a_o person_n who_o have_v so_o high_o deserve_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n and_o therefore_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v draw_v into_o a_o precedent_n much_o less_o to_o prescribe_v what_o sort_n of_o place_n be_v to_o be_v make_v bishop_n seat_n and_o after_o all_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o diocese_n of_o several_a congregation_n belong_v to_o it_o those_o who_o be_v not_o acquaint_v with_o the_o state_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n when_o they_o find_v instance_n of_o bishop_n in_o village_n or_o in_o a_o monastery_n may_v be_v apt_a to_o fancy_v that_o these_o may_v be_v the_o remain_v of_o another_o sort_n of_o episcopacy_n therefore_o to_o prevent_v such_o mistake_n i_o will_v brief_o lay_v down_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n from_o which_o our_o author_n have_v produce_v some_o instance_n from_o the_o old_a record_n that_o remain_v of_o they_o in_o the_o year_n 569._o king_n theadomir_n complain_v loyasae_n complain_v conc._n luc._n not._n garc._n loyasae_n that_o in_o the_o province_n of_o gallicia_n the_o diocese_n be_v so_o large_a that_o their_o bishop_n be_v not_o able_a to_o visit_v they_o in_o a_o year_n and_o therefore_o desire_v that_o they_o will_v take_v some_o order_n to_o remedy_v it_o whereupon_o they_o erect_v several_a new_a bishopric_n and_o one_o new_a metropolis_n yet_o all_o the_o bishopric_n of_o that_o great_a province_n after_o this_o accession_n be_v but_o thirteen_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o all_o spain_n meet_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o valentia_n convenissent_fw-la valentia_n anno._n 541._o luitpr_fw-la advers._fw-la cum_fw-la episcopi_fw-la totius_fw-la hispaniae_fw-la convenissent_fw-la they_o be_v in_o all_o but_o sixty_o four_o in_o the_o old_a book_n of_o sevil_n there_o be_v but_o 6_o archbishop_n and_o 67_o bishop_n in_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o spain_n in_o the_o old_a book_n of_o oviedo_n there_o be_v but_o 76_o bishop_n under_o king_n wamba_n 666._o wamba_n anno._n 666._o according_a to_o the_o old_a bood_n call_v itacius_n of_o which_o luitprandus_fw-la make_v frequent_a mention_n there_o
carnalium_fw-la multitudo_fw-la august_n ep_v 29._o ed._n bened._n have_v resolve_v to_o break_v that_o custom_n of_o feast_v in_o the_o church_n on_o ascension-day_n against_o the_o general_a inclination_n of_o his_o people_n it_o be_v object_v that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o st._n peter_n church_n in_o rome_n which_o he_o excuse_v from_o its_o distance_n from_o the_o bishop_n as_o appear_v from_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n late_o publish_v by_o the_o french_a benedictin_n to_o make_v proof_n of_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n in_o the_o first_o age_n it_o be_v not_o requisite_a that_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v christian_n nor_o that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o every_o city_n where_o a_o bishop_n be_v place_v shall_v consist_v of_o believer_n there_o be_v some_o city_n so_o populous_a that_o if_o but_o the_o twenty_o part_n be_v christian_n they_o must_v have_v divide_v into_o several_a congregation_n and_o there_o be_v several_a other_o so_o great_a that_o a_o ten_o part_n of_o they_o will_v have_v exceed_v the_o measure_n of_o a_o congregation_n and_o therefore_o where_o the_o proportion_n come_v to_o rise_v near_o to_o a_o equality_n or_o to_o exceed_v it_o most_o city_n must_v have_v more_o than_o one_o assembly_n though_o they_o be_v confine_v to_o one_o bishop_n nor_o be_v the_o city_n all_o that_o appertain_v to_o the_o bishop_n care_n but_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o territory_n be_v of_o his_o flock_n who_o be_v too_o numerous_a and_o too_o remote_a to_o come_v to_o the_o bishop_n church_n upon_o all_o occasion_n of_o religion_n yet_o some_o city_n from_o the_o beginning_n other_o in_o the_o three_o and_o several_a in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o four_o century_n be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v entire_o christian_n edessa_n steph._n edessa_n holsten_n in_o steph._n be_v the_o metropolis_n of_o osroena_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o king_n of_o that_o country_n but_o be_v more_o renown_a for_o be_v whole_o christian_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n be_v avoid_v by_o julian_n in_o his_o persian_a expedition_n eusebius_n 1._o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 6._o 1._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 2._o c._n 1._o bear_v testimony_n of_o this_o place_n that_o from_o our_o saviour_n time_n it_o have_v be_v altogether_o christian_n and_o so_o continue_v to_o the_o age_n he_o write_v in_o and_o whether_o the_o story_n of_o abgarus_n and_o the_o pretend_a letter_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o he_o be_v true_a or_o false_a yet_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o whole_a city_n be_v christian_n very_o early_o and_o consequent_o have_v several_a congregation_n and_o church_n under_o one_o bishop_n as_o sozomen_n 18._o sozomen_n soz._n l._n 6._o c._n 18._o mention_n it_o to_o have_v have_v neocaesarea_n in_o pontus_n be_v all_o christian_a in_o the_o three_o century_n and_o a_o little_a town_n in_o phrygia_n be_v destroy_v upon_o that_o account_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o next_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o julian_n caesarea_n the_o great_a city_n in_o cappadocia_n be_v entire_o christian_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n suffer_v not_o a_o little_a vexation_n from_o that_o apostate_n who_o disfranchise_v it_o and_o confiscate_v all_o the_o good_n belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n or_o territory_n appertain_v to_o it_o and_o this_o be_v a_o old_a grudge_n for_o he_o hate_v 4._o hate_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sozom._n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o this_o place_n mortal_o from_o the_o beginning_n as_o have_v long_o before_o destroy_v the_o heathen_a temple_n nisibis_fw-la the_o noble_a bulwark_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n a_o city_n so_o great_a and_o populous_a 33._o populous_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d zoz_n l._n 3._o c._n 33._o that_o when_o jovian_a have_v by_o a_o dishonourable_a treaty_n with_o the_o persian_n give_v it_o away_o the_o citizen_n beseech_v he_o that_o they_o may_v defend_v themselves_o against_o all_o the_o power_n of_o persia_n and_o they_o do_v not_o doubt_n but_o with_o their_o own_o force_n and_o at_o their_o own_o expense_n they_o may_v be_v able_a to_o preserve_v the_o the_o place_n 9_o place_n ad_fw-la defendendos_fw-la penates_fw-la se_fw-la solos_fw-la sufficere_fw-la sine_fw-la alimentis_fw-la publicis_fw-la &_o milite_fw-la ut_fw-la experti_fw-la sunt_fw-la saepe_fw-la ammian_n marc._n l._n 25._o c._n 9_o as_o they_o have_v often_o do_v this_o city_n be_v altogether_o christian_n and_o therefore_o julian_n 3._o julian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 3._o upon_o a_o irruption_n of_o the_o persian_n threaten_v to_o leave_v they_o out_o of_o his_o law_n and_o protection_n and_o that_o he_o will_v never_o set_v his_o foot_n in_o such_o a_o profane_a place_n where_o his_o god_n be_v not_o worship_v and_o all_o other_o city_n that_o be_v general_o christian_a be_v say_v to_o have_v the_o same_o reception_n when_o they_o have_v any_o occasion_n to_o sue_v for_o favour_n samosata_n 28._o samosata_n samosata_n civitas_n ampla_fw-la &_o illustris_fw-la ammian_n marc._n l._n 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d joseph_n b._n j._n l._n 7._o c._n 28._o the_o great_a city_n and_o the_o royal_a seat_n at_o commagena_n be_v not_o only_o altogether_o christian_n but_o all_o orthodox_n and_o catholic_n in_o valens_n his_o time_n for_o 15._o for_o theod._n h._n e._n l._n 4._o c._n 15._o when_o eusebius_n their_o bishop_n be_v banish_v and_o one_o eunomius_n a_o arrian_n put_v in_o his_o place_n neither_o rich_a nor_o poor_a nor_o young_a nor_o old_a will_v go_v into_o his_o church_n or_o have_v any_o communication_n with_o he_o majuma_n the_o port_n of_o gaza_n be_v make_v a_o city_n by_o constantine_n the_o great_a and_o call_v constantia_n because_o all_o 5._o all_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o the_o people_n turn_v christian_n though_o before_o they_o be_v extreme_o addict_v to_o idol_n and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o think_v this_o a_o mean_a place_n because_o it_o have_v always_o be_v dependent_a on_o a_o city_n the_o church_n of_o that_o place_n be_v represent_v 28._o represent_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 28._o as_o very_o great_a from_o the_o multitude_n of_o people_n and_o wealth_n and_o that_o this_o place_n have_v several_a church_n and_o altar_n belong_v to_o it_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o one_o who_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o place_n who_o tell_v 3._o tell_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 3._o we_o that_o when_o this_o diocese_n be_v take_v out_o of_o that_o of_o gaza_n the_o bound_n of_o their_o respective_a territory_n be_v lay_v out_o and_o what_o altar_n or_o church_n shall_v belong_v to_o each_o upon_o the_o same_o account_n of_o total_a conversion_n to_o christianity_n in_o constantine_n time_n constantina_n 5._o constantina_n soz._n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o in_o the_o same_o country_n have_v its_o name_n and_o very_o many_o 〈◊〉_d many_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d city_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n of_o their_o own_o accord_n and_o without_o any_o compulsion_n from_o the_o emperor_n leave_v their_o idol_n and_o become_v christian_a pull_v down_o their_o temple_n and_o build_v church_n in_o antioch_n one_o of_o the_o great_a city_n of_o the_o world_n the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n be_v christian_n and_o for_o this_o we_o have_v a_o witness_n who_o can_v be_v suspect_v to_o magnify_v their_o number_n it_o be_v julian_n the_o apostate_n misopog_n apostate_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d julian_n misopog_n he_o have_v offend_v so_o many_o of_o that_o city_n he_o have_v almost_o say_v all_o the_o senate_n the_o rich_a the_o common_a people_n and_o these_o be_v angry_a with_o he_o for_o the_o great_a part_n or_o rather_o all_o since_o they_o have_v choose_v atheism_n so_o the_o apostate_n call_v the_o christian_a religion_n and_o all_o this_o because_o he_o adhere_v to_o the_o the_o gentile_a superstition_n and_o how_o universal_a the_o neglect_n of_o the_o heathen_a rite_n be_v then_o in_o antioch_n the_o same_o author_n make_v a_o sad_a complaint_n for_o when_o he_o have_v come_v upon_o the_o feast_n of_o apollo_n to_o do_v sacrifice_n in_o daphne_n the_o people_n of_o antioch_n have_v provide_v no_o sacrifice_n for_o that_o occasion_n nor_o take_v the_o least_o notice_n of_o the_o feast_n and_o therefore_o chide_v misopog_n chide_v id._n misopog_n with_o the_o senate_n for_o put_v such_o a_o affront_n upon_o their_o peculiar_a god_n and_o then_o bestow_v his_o raillery_n upon_o they_o as_o if_o they_o be_v grow_v so_o poor_a that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o buy_v a_o sacrifice_n their_o wife_n have_v bestow_v all_o upon_o the_o galilean_n in_o short_a so_o small_a be_v the_o devotion_n of_o that_o great_a city_n towards_o their_o patron_n apollo_n that_o the_o
possession_n of_o his_o own_o people_n to_o this_o he_o add_v a_o marvellous_a remark_n that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o which_o some_o will_v have_v he_o to_o understand_v a_o diocese_n be_v frequent_o say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o city_n and_o of_o this_o expression_n he_o cite_v many_o example_n as_o if_o this_o imply_v that_o out_o of_o the_o city_n there_o be_v no_o diocese_n but_o let_v that_o instance_n of_o alexandria_n answer_n for_o all_o the_o rest_n since_o it_o be_v produce_v to_o this_o purpose_n for_o beside_o the_o city_n athanasius_n affirm_v the_o bishop_n have_v mareote_n a_o region_n contain_v many_o country_n parish_n and_o that_o there_o never_o have_v be_v so_o much_o as_o a_o chorepiscopus_n to_o govern_v those_o church_n but_o that_o they_o be_v under_o the_o immediate_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n we_o be_v far_o tell_v 123._o tell_v prim._n ep_v p._n 123._o that_o the_o apostle_n design_v there_o shall_v be_v such_o bishop_n as_o they_o institute_v in_o country_n town_n and_o not_o in_o city_n only_o if_o he_o mean_v by_o such_o bishop_n presbyter_n only_o then_o indeed_o not_o only_o every_o church_n but_o every_o congregation_n require_v such_o but_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o apostle_n ordination_n have_v the_o care_n of_o many_o congregation_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n that_o such_o general_a officer_n they_o do_v appoint_v and_o they_o themselves_o be_v of_o that_o kind_n some_o prelatist_n he_o observe_v will_v have_v bishop_n and_o city_n to_o be_v adequate_a but_o he_o will_v have_v it_o that_o church_n and_o bishop_n shall_v be_v so_o for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o city_n as_o such_o require_v a_o bishop_n but_o because_o it_o have_v a_o church_n in_o it_o it_o be_v true_a but_o the_o narrowness_n of_o the_o independent_a spirit_n confound_v a_o church_n with_o a_o congregation_n for_o as_o in_o the_o civil_a community_n of_o a_o city_n there_o be_v several_a subordinate_a assembly_n yet_o but_o one_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d proper_o so_o call_v which_o be_v endue_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n so_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n where_o therefore_o there_o be_v one_o competent_a church_n there_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o this_o may_v consist_v of_o several_a congregation_n the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n may_v be_v still_o mention_v to_o this_o purpose_n after_o all_o mr._n clerkson_n attempt_n to_o diminish_v it_o the_o number_n of_o convert_v there_o be_v too_o great_a for_o one_o congregation_n 11.22_o congregation_n act_n 11.22_o yet_o they_o all_o make_v but_o one_o church_n and_o so_o it_o be_v where_o ever_o christian_n increase_v in_o the_o same_o proportion_n and_o therefore_o i_o hope_v to_o be_v excuse_v if_o in_o this_o case_n i_o take_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n to_o be_v safe_a interpreter_n of_o their_o design_n than_o the_o novel_a conjecture_n of_o man_n addict_v to_o singularity_n the_o instance_n of_o majuma_n the_o port_n of_o gaza_n be_v direct_o against_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o it_o be_v bring_v for_o it_o have_v no_o bishop_n till_o it_o be_v a_o city_n and_o one_o thing_n in_o this_o citation_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n concern_v it_o deserve_v to_o be_v note_v for_o where_o sozomen_n say_v that_o the_o bound_n of_o each_o diocese_n be_v appoint_v and_o what_o altar_n shall_v belong_v to_o each_o our_o author_n think_v fit_a to_o change_v the_o number_n and_o to_o write_v distinct_a altar_n as_o agree_v better_a with_o his_o notion_n though_o this_o way_n do_v not_o agree_v well_o with_o common_a honesty_n and_o good_a faith_n the_o weak_a objection_n which_o he_o make_v for_o episcopal_a man_n and_o the_o suitable_a answer_n he_o return_v to_o it_o be_v not_o worth_a notice_n for_o here_o he_o speak_v only_o to_o himself_o and_o i_o do_v not_o wonder_v he_o shall_v argue_v so_o weak_o for_o we_o when_o his_o argument_n against_o we_o be_v so_o harmless_a so_o the_o mother_n of_o sisera_n and_o her_o wise_a lady_n do_v doubt_n and_o reply_n and_o fancy_n triumph_n when_o the_o day_n be_v lose_v the_o difference_n between_o the_o modern_a and_o ancient_a model_n be_v apparent_a as_o mr._n clerkson_n think_v in_o england_n and_o ireland_n the_o ancient_a model_n of_o episcopacy_n in_o england_n be_v something_o hard_o to_o find_v for_o the_o saxon_n be_v pagan_n when_o they_o subdue_v this_o country_n and_o drive_v the_o old_a inhabitant_n into_o the_o remote_a corner_n of_o it_o all_o the_o bound_n of_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n within_o this_o kingdom_n be_v lose_v but_o the_o model_n he_o speak_v of_o be_v that_o of_o gregory_n the_o great_a who_o have_v no_o more_o design_n to_o plant_v congregational_a episcopacy_n in_o england_n than_o he_o have_v to_o make_v it_o independent_a he_o intend_v twelve_o bishop_n for_o the_o province_n of_o york_n as_o mr._n clerkson_n observe_v but_o that_o may_v have_v be_v do_v and_o the_o diocese_n be_v large_a enough_o for_o that_o province_n then_o reach_v from_o humbre_a to_o the_o frith_n of_o edinburgh_n and_o about_o the_o year_n 681._o have_v five_o bishop_n however_o mr._n clerkson_n affirm_v that_o for_o many_o age_n it_o have_v no_o more_o than_o three_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o have_v diocese_n of_o very_o great_a extent_n those_o in_o the_o south_n be_v not_o all_o so_o great_a but_o yet_o comprehend_v many_o congregation_n and_o some_o of_o they_o as_o canterbury_n london_n and_o rochester_n do_v remain_n still_o under_o the_o same_o limit_n that_o be_v at_o first_o appoint_v they_o by_o augustin_n the_o archbishop_n how_o they_o stand_v before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o saxon_n be_v now_o beyond_o all_o memory_n and_o there_o be_v little_a hope_n leave_v of_o make_v any_o new_a discovery_n in_o this_o matter_n which_o have_v be_v treat_v by_o so_o many_o great_a man_n and_o diligent_a inquirer_n into_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o country_n marcianus_n heracleota_n 92._o heracleota_n peripl_n p._n 92._o reckon_v fifty_o nine_o city_n in_o britain_n which_o i_o suppose_v he_o take_v out_o of_o ptolemy_n 2._o ptolemy_n ptol._n l._n 2._o many_o of_o these_o be_v place_v in_o scotland_n and_o about_o forty_o remain_n for_o england_n and_o wales_n if_o they_o observe_v the_o general_a rule_n of_o the_o church_n the_o number_n of_o their_o bishop_n may_v be_v equal_a to_o that_o of_o their_o city_n and_o so_o their_o diocese_n will_v be_v much_o too_o wide_a for_o mr._n clerkson_n purpose_n but_o it_o seem_v this_o number_n be_v reduce_v afterward_o for_o bede_n 1._o bede_n bed_n h._n e._n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o mention_n but_o twenty_o eight_o when_o he_o will_v set_v out_o the_o most_o flourish_a condition_n of_o this_o country_n in_o the_o roman_a time_n as_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o herudford_n for_o augment_v the_o number_n of_o bishop_n which_o mr._n clerkson_n insist_o on_o there_o be_v good_a reason_n for_o it_o for_o at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o seven_o bishop_n in_o all_o the_o saxon_a part_n of_o britain_n which_o then_o reach_v to_o the_o frith_n of_o edinburg_n be_v as_o large_a as_o all_o england_n and_o wales_n join_v together_o be_v now_o the_o ancient_a model_n in_o ireland_n be_v as_o little_o know_v for_o the_o legend_n of_o st._n patrick_n be_v but_o sorry_a evidence_n of_o the_o ancient_a state_n of_o the_o irish_a church_n and_o that_o fable_n have_v be_v already_o examine_v in_o phoenicia_n indeed_o the_o latin_n do_v reduce_v the_o bishopric_n to_o a_o lesser_a number_n in_o the_o twelve_o century_n because_o the_o condition_n of_o that_o country_n be_v much_o alter_v and_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_a episcopal_a city_n destroy_v or_o the_o people_n mahometan_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o humour_n of_o that_o age_n instead_o of_o multiply_v to_o reduce_v bishopric_n be_v only_o a_o fancy_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n for_o i_o have_v show_v the_o practice_n of_o italy_n at_o that_o time_n to_o be_v quite_o contrary_a where_o instead_o of_o reduce_v they_o raise_v a_o great_a number_n of_o new_a bishopric_n and_o have_v be_v increase_v of_o they_o ever_o since_o nor_o do_v it_o serve_v to_o any_o purpose_n to_o produce_v the_o patriarchat_n of_o antioch_n so_o different_a in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o latin_n from_o what_o it_o have_v be_v ancient_o since_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o country_n have_v be_v much_o alter_v and_o the_o christian_n be_v reduce_v to_o a_o very_a small_a number_n under_o the_o long_a and_o heavy_a tyranny_n of_o the_o mahometan_n mr._n clerkson_n bestow_v a_o whole_a chapter_n to_o confirm_v his_o notion_n of_o the_o smallness_n of_o ancient_a bishopric_n by_o repeat_v those_o observation_n he_o
manner_n to_o be_v drop_v and_o all_o the_o difficulty_n now_o to_o remain_v concern_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o bishop_n territory_n and_o the_o number_n belong_v to_o his_o inspection_n yet_o in_o ancient_a time_n this_o make_v no_o difference_n for_o sozomen_n 19_o sozomen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 7._o c._n 19_o observe_v the_o great_a inequality_n of_o ancient_a diocese_n and_o some_o other_o little_a usage_n in_o which_o the_o church_n of_o one_o country_n differ_v from_o those_o of_o another_o commend_v the_o wisdom_n of_o ancient_a bishop_n who_o look_v upon_o it_o as_o a_o great_a piece_n of_o folly_n to_o divide_v communion_n about_o these_o matter_n the_o greatness_n or_o smallness_n of_o a_o diocese_n make_v in_o their_o opinion_n no_o difference_n in_o the_o office_n the_o synod_n assemble_v at_o antioch_n in_o their_o letter_n 8._o letter_n soz_fw-fr l._n 3._o c._n 8._o to_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n let_v he_o understand_v that_o they_o do_v not_o account_v themselves_o inferior_a to_o he_o in_o authority_n though_o their_o church_n be_v not_o so_o great_a or_o populous_a as_o he_o but_o be_v far_o from_o disow_v he_o to_o be_v of_o their_o order_n because_o his_o diocese_n do_v exceed_v they_o and_o jerom_n evagr._fw-la jerom_n hieron_n ep._n ad_fw-la evagr._fw-la declare_v himself_o free_o upon_o this_o point_n that_o the_o great_a or_o lesser_a compass_n of_o a_o diocese_n make_v no_o alteration_n in_o the_o episcopacy_n but_o the_o poor_a bishop_n of_o eugubium_n have_v the_o same_o authority_n and_o order_n with_o that_o of_o rome_n yet_o now_o it_o seem_v this_o difference_n be_v become_v fundamental_a and_o mr._n clarkson_n contend_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o sort_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v endure_v such_o only_a who_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o no_o more_o than_o a_o single_a congregation_n this_o we_o be_v tell_v by_o he_o the_o apostle_n intend_v this_o the_o first_o three_o or_o four_o age_n practise_v and_o within_o that_o space_n of_o time_n there_o be_v no_o other_o episcopacy_n how_o well_o he_o have_v perform_v this_o undertake_n will_v appear_v from_o this_o book_n in_o which_o i_o have_v be_v so_o far_o from_o dissemble_v or_o pass_v by_o any_o testimony_n that_o may_v seem_v material_a that_o i_o be_o afraid_a to_o have_v incur_v very_o just_a censure_n for_o be_v too_o minute_n and_o punctual_a in_o my_o answer_n beyond_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o objection_n yet_o for_o this_o i_o may_v be_v allow_v to_o use_v the_o plea_n of_o apuleius_n apol._n apuleius_n ne_fw-fr videar_fw-la cuipiam_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la ex_fw-la frivolis_fw-la praeteriero_n id_fw-la agnovisse_fw-la potius_fw-la quam_fw-la contempsisse_fw-la quod_fw-la si_fw-la forte_fw-fr inepta_fw-la videbor_fw-la &_o oppido_fw-la frivola_fw-la velle_fw-la defendere_fw-la illis_fw-la debet_fw-la ea_fw-la res_fw-la vitio_fw-la verti_fw-la quibus_fw-la turpe_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la haec_fw-la objectasse_fw-la non_fw-la mihi_fw-la culpae_fw-la dari_fw-la cvi_fw-la honestum_fw-la erit_fw-la etiam_fw-la haec_fw-la diluisse_fw-la apul._n apol._n on_o the_o like_a occasion_n that_o i_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o many_o frivolous_a thing_n lest_o to_o some_o i_o may_v seem_v to_o decline_v they_o as_o unanswerable_a and_o not_o to_o omit_v they_o out_o of_o just_a contempt_n and_o if_o my_o answer_n to_o some_o mean_a and_o captious_a remark_n may_v seem_v sometime_o to_o taste_v of_o the_o futility_n of_o the_o objection_n yet_o i_o hope_v this_o will_v be_v impute_v to_o he_o who_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o offer_v such_o thing_n in_o evidence_n and_o not_o to_o i_o who_o be_v concern_v to_o disprove_v they_o some_o may_v perhaps_o expect_v a_o apology_n for_o delay_n that_o the_o book_n come_v not_o out_o soon_o but_o for_o this_o i_o be_o not_o solicitous_a for_o a_o excuse_n apprehend_v rather_o the_o contrary_a fault_n that_o it_o be_v come_v out_o too_o soon_o for_o i_o find_v in_o the_o book_n i_o answer_v so_o many_o mark_n of_o haste_n and_o precipitation_n that_o i_o think_v myself_o oblige_v to_o take_v warning_n though_o the_o design_n of_o that_o work_n seem_v to_o have_v take_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o author_n life_n in_o such_o variety_n of_o fact_n so_o remote_a and_o many_o of_o they_o so_o obscure_a there_o be_v too_o many_o thing_n to_o be_v consider_v to_o admit_v of_o haste_n and_o after_o all_o the_o care_n and_o the_o leisure_n one_o can_v take_v it_o be_v neither_o easy_a nor_o usual_a in_o this_o kind_n of_o work_n to_o avoid_v oversight_n and_o omission_n of_o some_o thing_n very_o material_a the_o author_n of_o the_o preface_n may_v perhaps_o think_v himself_o neglect_v that_o he_o be_v not_o think_v considerable_a enough_o to_o deserve_v a_o answer_n he_o promise_v himself_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o epistle_n recommendatory_a shall_v find_v the_o same_o entertainment_n with_o the_o worthy_a treatise_n of_o mr._n clarkson_n but_o diviner_n be_v sometime_o disappoint_v for_o my_o part_n i_o be_o resolve_v to_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o the_o book_n and_o the_o recommendation_n and_o i_o hope_v mr._n chauncey_n will_v see_v some_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v not_o take_v it_o ill_o i_o wish_v he_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v represent_v the_o reference_n right_a but_o we_o must_v forgive_v where_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v and_o i_o dare_v say_v the_o good_a man_n do_v his_o best_a but_o why_o shall_v he_o be_v angry_a with_o dr._n sherlock_n for_o defend_v protestant_n principle_n against_o the_o papist_n upon_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n why_o do_v not_o he_o or_o some_o of_o his_o brethren_n step_v out_o to_o vindicate_v congregational_a episcopacy_n against_o father_n ellis_n and_o his_o three_o colleague_n who_o make_v but_o four_o diocese_n of_o this_o whole_a kingdom_n for_o god_n sake_n tell_v i_o who_o maintain_v protestant_n principle_n then_o upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o dissenter_n but_o the_o serpent_n and_o the_o venomous_a vermin_n be_v subtle_a than_o the_o other_o beast_n of_o the_o field_n for_o in_o hard_a weather_n they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v on_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o be_v creep_v into_o their_o hole_n but_o when_o a_o warm_a season_n come_v they_o crawl_v out_o to_o snap_v at_o the_o heel_n of_o those_o who_o have_v endure_v the_o severity_n of_o the_o winter_n if_o he_o expect_v the_o same_o treatment_n with_o mr._n clarkson_n he_o shall_v have_v write_v intelligible_o and_o write_v sense_n but_o when_o he_o run_v the_o change_n upon_o jus_fw-la divinum_fw-la humanum_fw-la and_o apostolicum_fw-la when_o he_o talk_v of_o hermaphroditick_a divinity_n of_o office-charge_a of_o office_n discrimination_n of_o appendix-court_n and_o vestment_n and_o canon_n among_o the_o heteroclite_n of_o his_o divinity_n what_o can_v a_o man_n do_v but_o wonder_v and_o keep_v silence_n believe_v i_o i_o will_v as_o soon_o dispute_v with_o a_o paper-mill_n as_o undertake_v to_o answer_v a_o man_n of_o such_o amaze_a language_n but_o for_o the_o heteroclite_n i_o may_v perhaps_o know_v what_o they_o may_v import_v it_o be_v when_o a_o thing_n change_v its_o kind_n as_o for_o example_n when_o a_o man_n leave_v his_o shop_n and_o the_o business_n of_o his_o call_v to_o write_v letter_n recommendatory_a of_o what_o he_o do_v not_o understand_v errata_n which_o disturb_v the_o sense_n page_n 18._o line_n 14._o for_o passover_n read_v pentecost_n p._n 31._o l._n 6._o for_o disprove_v r._n prove_v p._n 37._o l._n 18._o for_o future_a r._n further_o p._n 69._o l._n 6._o for_o useful_a r._n unfit_a p._n 78._o l._n 20._o for_o first_o r._n five_o p._n 98._o l._n 9_o after_o bishop_n of_o add_v the_o city_n p._n 358._o l._n 27._o for_o populous_o r._n pompous_o p._n 361._o l._n 16._o after_o he_o do_v add_v not_o p._n 406._o l._n 8._o for_o fermissus_n r._n telmissus_fw-la a_o defence_n of_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n for_o those_o who_o confine_v their_o charity_n as_o they_o do_v their_o primitive_a episcopacy_n to_o a_o single_a congregation_n to_o charge_v all_o who_o differ_v from_o they_o as_o man_n whole_o govern_v by_o prejudice_n and_o interest_n the_o fondness_n they_o have_v for_o their_o own_o conceit_n render_v they_o incapable_a of_o any_o jealousy_n of_o their_o truth_n or_o evidence_n and_o if_o these_o notion_n do_v not_o receive_v such_o entertainment_n as_o the_o indulgent_a author_n be_v persuade_v they_o deserve_v and_o success_n do_v not_o answer_v 1._o answer_v mr._n clarkson_n primitive_a episcopacy_n pag._n 1._o opinion_n it_o must_v be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o unequal_a encounter_n they_o have_v with_o prejudice_n and_o interest_n thing_n that_o do_v frequent_o baffle_v the_o best_a evidence_n in_o person_n otherwise_o very_o discern_v and_o judicious_a it_o be_v just_a indeed_o that_o they_o shall_v bear_v the_o reproach_n of_o insincerity_n
who_o refuse_v full_a or_o competent_a evidence_n when_o the_o proof_n rise_v up_o to_o a_o demonstration_n or_o be_v direct_v and_o suitable_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o matter_n but_o for_o man_n to_o advance_v new_a notion_n and_o paradox_n concern_v thing_n at_o very_o great_a distance_n of_o which_o the_o proof_n be_v obscure_a and_o the_o evidence_n only_o conjectural_a and_o then_o to_o cry_v out_o upon_o those_o who_o be_v not_o convince_v as_o person_n of_o no_o faith_n or_o equity_n argue_v a_o confidence_n very_o unusual_a and_o rare_o to_o be_v see_v either_o in_o understanding_n or_o good_a men._n that_o for_o the_o space_n of_o the_o first_o three_o century_n a_o bishop_n be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o pastor_n to_o a_o single_a congregation_n be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n a_o conclusion_n very_o new_a and_o never_o hear_v that_o i_o can_v learn_v before_o the_o last_o age._n the_o space_n of_o time_n intervening_a between_o the_o near_a point_n of_o the_o three_o century_n assign_v and_o the_o birth_n of_o this_o notion_n want_v little_a of_o thirteen_o complete_a century_n and_o therefore_o the_o evidence_n of_o a_o matter_n so_o remote_a aught_o to_o be_v positive_a and_o direct_a and_o it_o must_v be_v expect_v that_o some_o ancient_a witness_n who_o live_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o that_o term_n or_o in_o the_o next_o age_n at_o least_o shall_v be_v produce_v and_o have_v declare_v express_o that_o no_o bishop_n have_v more_o than_o one_o single_a congregation_n or_o that_o it_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o time_n that_o a_o bishop_n ought_v to_o have_v no_o more_o if_o but_o one_o author_n of_o credit_n have_v leave_v this_o testimony_n the_o circumstantial_a evidence_n may_v reasonable_o be_v admit_v for_o confirmation_n but_o when_o all_o the_o proof_n of_o a_o fact_n so_o distant_a consist_v only_o of_o conjecture_n and_o suspicion_n and_o unconcluding_a circumstance_n i_o hope_v that_o in_o this_o time_n of_o liberty_n a_o honest_a man_n may_v refufe_v to_o believe_v so_o obscure_a and_o unnecessary_a inference_n without_o any_o diminution_n of_o his_o reputation_n it_o may_v be_v very_o true_a that_o some_o village_n have_v bishop_n that_o several_a city_n be_v not_o great_a than_o some_o of_o our_o market-town_n that_o all_o the_o people_n may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o usual_a sense_n to_o be_v present_a at_o church_n in_o the_o great_a city_n all_o this_o may_v be_v true_a and_o yet_o very_o far_o from_o prove_v the_o point_n in_o question_n the_o conclusion_n congregational_a episcopacy_n may_v remain_v still_o at_o as_o great_a a_o distance_n from_o these_o premise_n as_o the_o primitive_a time_n we_o speak_v of_o be_v from_o the_o present_a age_n or_o as_o some_o gift_a man_n discourse_n be_v from_o the_o text._n when_o this_o fancy_n of_o primitive_a congregational_a episcopacy_n come_v first_o into_o man_n head_n the_o diocesan_n way_n have_v be_v every_o where_o establish_v and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o take_v this_o for_o a_o piece_n of_o popery_n no_o church_n come_v near_o to_o the_o congregational_a standard_n than_o those_o that_o be_v under_o the_o immediate_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n nor_o be_v it_o pretend_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v new_a they_o have_v a_o acknowledge_a prescription_n of_o above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n but_o the_o time_n of_o its_o rise_n be_v not_o so_o positive_o assign_v cartwright_n pretend_v to_o trace_v some_o footstep_n of_o the_o congregational_a way_n in_o the_o two_o first_o century_n but_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o he_o or_o the_o dissenter_n of_o his_o time_n have_v make_v the_o conclusion_n so_o universal_a that_o no_o bishop_n within_o that_o compass_n of_o time_n have_v more_o than_o one_o congregation_n rome_n and_o alexandria_n and_o the_o great_a city_n seem_v to_o stand_v out_o and_o remain_v exception_n but_o now_o they_o too_o be_v take_v in_o and_o reduce_v to_o the_o congregational_a model_n it_o be_v something_o hard_o to_o conceive_v how_o the_o species_n of_o church-government_n shall_v come_v to_o be_v change_v and_o no_o account_n of_o so_o important_a a_o change_n be_v transmit_v to_o posterity_n those_o who_o fancy_n presbytery_n turn_v into_o episcopacy_n in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o the_o second_o century_n make_v some_o show_n of_o reply_n when_o they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a obscure_a age_n and_o have_v leave_v little_a or_o nothing_o of_o its_o story_n behind_o it_o but_o the_o age_n in_o which_o primitive_a episcopacy_n be_v pretend_v to_o have_v be_v transform_v into_o diocesan_n be_v of_o another_o character_n they_o abound_v with_o learning_n and_o writer_n and_o a_o great_a many_o of_o their_o book_n have_v be_v preserve_v but_o not_o the_o least_o hint_n of_o this_o fundamental_a alteration_n of_o church-government_n what!_o so_o just_a a_o offence_n give_v by_o the_o church_n and_o no_o sectary_n no_o schismatic_a to_o reproach_v she_o those_o who_o be_v so_o minute_n and_o trifle_n in_o their_o cavil_n can_v they_o overlook_v so_o obvious_a a_o topick_n as_o this_o of_o diocesan_n innovation_n nay_o these_o very_a sect_n where_o their_o number_n make_v they_o capable_a live_v themselves_o under_o the_o diocesan_n way_n if_o then_o in_o time_n of_o so_o much_o division_n contention_n and_o dispute_n such_o a_o change_n as_o this_o can_v be_v introduce_v without_o any_o opposition_n and_o all_o party_n of_o different_a opinion_n and_o interest_n conform_v to_o it_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v see_v how_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o miracle_n for_o what_o great_a miracle_n can_v we_o well_o imagine_v than_o that_o so_o many_o sort_n of_o christian_n divide_v by_o principle_n and_o mutual_a aversion_n shall_v conspire_v to_o receive_v this_o pretend_a alteration_n of_o episcopacy_n so_o that_o those_o who_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v primitive_a must_v allow_v it_o a_o high_a title_n since_o miracle_n carry_v with_o it_o much_o great_a authority_n than_o prescription_n mr._n clerkson_n therefore_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o apprehend_v that_o it_o will_v appear_v a_o great_a paradox_n to_o hear_v that_o a_o bishop_n of_o old_a be_v but_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o single_a church_n or_o that_o his_o diocese_n be_v no_o large_a than_o one_o communion_n table_n may_v serve_v it_o do_v indeed_o seem_v very_o strange_a not_o only_o to_o those_o who_o take_v the_o measure_n of_o ancient_a time_n and_o thing_n by_o their_o own_o or_o be_v much_o concern_v they_o shall_v not_o be_v otherwise_o than_o they_o be_v now_o but_o most_o of_o all_o to_o those_o who_o have_v competent_a knowledge_n of_o those_o time_n and_o who_o be_v qualify_v to_o make_v some_o judgement_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n from_o the_o testimony_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n it_o be_v a_o great_a weakness_n to_o take_v the_o measure_n of_o ancient_a time_n by_o our_o own_o 116._o own_o p._n 116._o but_o i_o know_v none_o more_o unfortunate_a in_o this_o way_n of_o reckon_v than_o the_o author_n himself_o who_o measure_v the_o ancient_a territory_n of_o greek_a and_o roman_a city_n by_o liberty_n that_o belong_v to_o we_o and_o demand_n with_o more_o zeal_n than_o knowledge_n how_o many_o city_n in_o the_o roman_a empire_n can_v be_v sh●wn_v we_o where_o this_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o city_n magistrate_n reach_v far_a than_o it_o do_v in_o our_o english_a city_n urbem_fw-la quam_fw-la dicunt_fw-la romam_fw-la melibaee_fw-la pu●avi_fw-la stultus_fw-la ego_fw-la huic_fw-la nostrae_fw-la similem_fw-la but_o of_o this_o in_o its_o proper_a place_n how_o great_a advantage_n may_v be_v expect_v from_o a_o clear_a discovery_n of_o what_o the_o author_n think_v to_o be_v true_a in_o this_o particular_a i_o can_v ready_o discern_v have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o prospective_n to_o discover_v thing_n at_o so_o vast_a a_o distance_n much_o less_o can_v i_o see_v that_o it_o may_v contribute_v much_o to_o the_o decide_n of_o the_o controversy_n among_o we_o about_o church-government_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o happy_a composure_n now_o to_o deal_v liberal_o with_o this_o notion_n of_o primitive_a episcopacy_n let_v we_o yield_v up_o the_o point_n at_o once_o and_o grant_v that_o no_o bishop_n for_o the_o three_o first_o century_n have_v more_o than_o one_o congregation_n but_o at_o the_o same_o time_n let_v we_o take_v the_o reason_n along_o with_o we_o that_o for_o so_o long_a time_n no_o city_n have_v more_o christian_n than_o may_v meet_v in_o one_o church_n no_o bishop_n then_o can_v have_v more_o congregation_n than_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o his_o city_n and_o territory_n do_v compose_v but_o the_o controversy_n about_o church-government_n be_v still_o undecided_a for_o this_o do_v not_o preclude_v the_o bishop_n from_o a_o right_n of_o have_v many_o congregation_n under_o their_o inspection_n if_o more_o have_v be_v
the_o controversy_n about_o church-government_n turn_v upon_o question_n of_o right_a and_o not_o of_o fact_n but_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v pertinent_o allege_v to_o prove_v a_o right_n where_o the_o fact_n do_v involve_v a_o judgement_n of_o right_n but_o where_o it_o be_v pure_o accidental_a it_o have_v no_o consequence_n on_o either_o side_n two_o great_a casuist_n upon_o a_o certain_a time_n fall_v into_o dispute_n about_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o take_v tobacco_n the_o dispute_n be_v carry_v on_o with_o great_a learning_n and_o niceness_n one_o make_v it_o out_o clear_o that_o none_o of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n ever_o use_v it_o and_o that_o for_o many_o century_n there_o be_v not_o one_o christian_a smoker_n in_o the_o world_n the_o other_o desire_v to_o know_v the_o principle_n upon_o which_o they_o condemn_v it_o and_o be_v tell_v very_o serious_o that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n censure_v against_o it_o nor_o can_v there_o well_o be_v any_o for_o the_o plant_n have_v not_o yet_o be_v bring_v to_o these_o part_n of_o the_o world_n so_o the_o controversy_n remain_v undecided_a by_o this_o negative_a instance_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n because_o their_o forbearance_n be_v not_o the_o effect_n of_o judgement_n or_o choice_n but_o from_o a_o absolute_a ignorance_n of_o the_o matter_n now_o for_o decide_v of_o controversy_n and_o bring_v thing_n to_o a_o happy_a composure_n i_o be_v resolve_v to_o signalise_v my_o compliance_n and_o submit_v to_o a_o paradox_n not_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o any_o testimony_n bring_v by_o the_o author_n but_o to_o avoid_v importunity_n and_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o peace_n but_o see_v all_o our_o controversy_n about_o church-government_n remain_v in_o the_o same_o state_n after_o all_o my_o yield_a i_o conceive_v that_o i_o be_o at_o liberty_n to_o revoke_v my_o concession_n and_o to_o contest_v the_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o testimony_n allege_v by_o mr._n clerkson_n do_v not_o make_v sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o point_n under_o debate_n that_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o three_o first_o century_n be_v no_o more_o than_o pastor_n to_o a_o single_a congregation_n for_o the_o scripture-time_n there_o will_v be_v little_a difficulty_n since_o as_o much_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o most_o learned_a and_o judicious_a assertor_n of_o prelacy_n as_o need_v be_v desire_v 2._o desire_v prim._n ep._n p._n 2._o archbishop_n whitgift_n be_v bring_v in_o to_o witness_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o general_o receive_v any_o where_n when_o it_o be_v first_o preach_v that_o when_o mathias_n be_v choose_v the_o whole_a church_n be_v gather_v in_o one_o place_n and_o so_o it_o be_v when_o the_o deacon_n be_v choose_v this_o may_v be_v true_a and_o yet_o not_o reach_v to_o the_o whole_a extent_n of_o scripture-time_n but_o only_o to_o those_o instance_n of_o popular_a election_n which_o be_v allege_v by_o cartwright_n the_o late_a of_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v within_o a_o year_n of_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n and_o if_o for_o the_o first_o year_n of_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o church_n may_v not_o increase_v beyond_o a_o single_a congregation_n it_o will_v be_v of_o no_o great_a consequence_n either_o for_o or_o against_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n yet_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o scripture_n that_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v otherwise_o for_o in_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n the_o assembly_n consist_v of_o about_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o 1._o twenty_o act_n 1._o whereas_o our_o saviour_n before_o his_o ascension_n appear_v in_o a_o assembly_n of_o five_o hundred_o brethren_n 15._o brethren_n 1_o cor._n 15._o so_o that_o not_o a_o four_o part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v present_a at_o that_o election_n when_o the_o deacon_n be_v elect_v the_o whole_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n can_v not_o be_v present_a in_o that_o assembly_n for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o convert_v be_v then_o too_o great_a especial_o consider_v the_o christian_n have_v not_o the_o convenience_n of_o very_a capacious_a place_n to_o meet_v in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o concern_v to_o be_v present_a on_o that_o occasion_n for_o the_o woman_n have_v no_o part_n in_o election_n nor_o perhaps_o servant_n nor_o child_n though_o of_o age_n while_o they_o live_v in_o their_o father_n house_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n can_v not_o be_v present_a i_o shall_v then_o show_v more_o full_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o way_n by_o which_o our_o author_n endeavour_v to_o diminish_v the_o first-fruit_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o lessen_v the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n bishop_n downham_n be_v allege_v to_o as_o little_a purpose_n for_o all_o he_o affirm_v be_v that_o at_o the_o very_a first_o conversion_n of_o city_n the_o whole_a number_n of_o people_n convert_v be_v able_a to_o make_v but_o a_o small_a congregation_n for_o who_o can_v tell_v how_o far_o he_o intend_v the_o very_a first_o conversion_n shall_v extend_v the_o close_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v above_o sixty_o year_n after_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o many_o great_a city_n and_o therefore_o though_o at_o the_o first_o conversion_n the_o number_n of_o christian_n may_v be_v but_o small_a yet_o a_o church_n may_v improve_v something_o in_o threescore_o year_n and_o grow_v up_o from_o one_o small_a to_o many_o great_a congregation_n no_o instance_n say_v our_o author_n can_v be_v bring_v against_o this_o but_o the_o three_o thousand_o convert_v at_o jerusalem_n 2.41_o jerusalem_n act_n 2.41_o to_o which_o some_o will_v add_v five_o thousand_o more_o some_o will_v add_v let_v it_o not_o displease_v any_o zealous_a brother_n of_o the_o congregational_a way_n that_o st._n luke_n have_v record_v the_o number_n of_o those_o convert_v his_o word_n be_v so_o plain_a and_o his_o sense_n so_o necessary_a that_o they_o can_v be_v avoid_v by_o any_o shift_n 4.4_o shift_n act_n 4.4_o many_o of_o those_o who_o hear_v the_o word_n i._n e._n then_o preach_v not_o in_o a_o set_a assembly_n but_o occasional_o in_o the_o temple_n believe_v and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o man_n be_v about_o five_o thousand_o but_o can_v there_o no_o instance_n be_v bring_v against_o the_o independent_a fancy_n beside_o these_o two_o our_o author_n it_o seem_v be_v willing_a to_o overlook_v such_o passage_n as_o testify_v the_o great_a increase_n of_o christian_n in_o jerusalem_n after_o this_o happy_a beginning_n 〈◊〉_d beginning_n act_n 5.13_o 14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d st._n luke_n relate_v that_o after_o the_o fearful_a end_n of_o ananias_n and_o his_o wife_n believer_n be_v the_o more_o add_v to_o the_o church_n multitude_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n the_o ethiopic_a version_n deserve_v to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o place_n for_o instead_o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o author_n of_o that_o version_n seem_v to_o have_v read_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o if_o the_o jewish_a magistrate_n dare_v not_o then_o restrain_v the_o preach_a the_o apostle_n because_o the_o people_n magnify_v they_o for_o their_o miracle_n and_o then_o great_a addition_n be_v make_v to_o the_o church_n but_o st._n luke_n proceed_v to_o give_v yet_o great_a instance_n of_o the_o increase_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n 〈◊〉_d jerusalem_n act_n 6.1_o 7._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o deacon_n the_o number_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v multiply_v and_o immediate_o after_o the_o institution_n of_o these_o officer_n the_o word_n of_o god_n increase_v and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o disciple_n multiply_v in_o jerusalem_n great_o and_o a_o great_a company_n of_o the_o priest_n or_o as_o the_o syriack_n read_v of_o the_o jew_n be_v obedient_a or_o submit_v to_o the_o faith_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o no_o certain_a number_n be_v express_v in_o these_o place_n and_o therefore_o they_o conclude_v nothing_o it_o be_v true_a the_o number_n of_o these_o late_a convert_v be_v not_o set_v down_o but_o must_v they_o therefore_o be_v lose_v to_o the_o church_n and_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n these_o expression_n of_o multitude_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o increase_v great_o or_o mighty_o of_o great_a company_n or_o crowd_n be_v of_o very_o great_a content_n and_o capable_a of_o receive_v many_o myriad_n and_o if_o we_o compare_v they_o with_o these_o general_a term_n of_o which_o we_o know_v the_o definite_a sum_n it_o must_v be_v allow_v by_o all_o rule_n of_o speak_v that_o those_o indefinite_a expression_n must_v exceed_v the_o other_o for_o instance_n when_o a_o accession_n of_o five_o thousand_o be_v make_v to_o the_o church_n it_o be_v say_v that_o many_o of_o those_o who_o hear_v the_o word_n believe_v if_o the_o relator_n have_v not_o express_v the_o number_n but_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o discretion_n of_o independent_a calculator_n i_o be_o afraid_a this_o indefinite_a
word_n many_o will_v never_o have_v yield_v we_o a_o hundred_o convert_v and_o yet_o it_o seem_v it_o comprehend_v no_o less_o than_o five_o thousand_o wherefore_o we_o may_v reasonable_o conclude_v that_o those_o general_a word_n that_o denote_v exaggeration_n of_o multitude_n and_o a_o sum_n unusual_a and_o wonderful_a can_v but_o comprehend_v more_o than_o those_o thousand_o of_o the_o first_o conversion_n this_o will_v be_v sufficient_a though_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o far_o evidence_n to_o persuade_v any_o equal_a reader_n that_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v now_o grow_v too_o numerous_a to_o meet_v all_o in_o one_o place_n especial_o consider_v the_o christian_a assembly_n in_o those_o time_n be_v hold_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o house_n to_o house_n but_o there_o remain_v yet_o another_o instance_n that_o seem_v more_o definite_a and_o decisive_a for_o james_n and_o the_o elder_n of_o jerusalem_n observe_v to_o st._n paul_n that_o there_o be_v many_o myriad_n of_o the_o circumcision_n which_o believe_v 21.20_o believe_v act_n 21.20_o thou_o see_v brother_n how_o many_o thousand_o myriad_n of_o jew_n there_o be_v which_o believe_v and_o they_o be_v all_o zealous_a of_o the_o law_n the_o multitude_n must_v come_v together_o etc._n etc._n if_o these_o myriad_n be_v present_a at_o jerusalem_n when_o st._n paul_n be_v there_o there_o will_v be_v little_a reason_n to_o deduct_v nineteen_o part_n out_o of_o twenty_o 6._o twenty_o prim._n ep._n p._n 6._o upon_o the_o account_n of_o stranger_n as_o our_o author_n undertake_v to_o do_v for_o i_o hope_v to_o make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o pentecost_n be_v over_o before_o the_o apostle_n arrive_v at_o jerusalem_n now_o lest_o these_o great_a number_n of_o convert_v shall_v grow_v into_o a_o diocese_n consist_v of_o several_a congregation_n mr._n clerkson_n interpose_v a_o timely_a caveat_n in_o these_o word_n 4._o word_n prim._n ep._n p._n 4._o what_o may_v be_v argue_v from_o hence_o for_o great_a number_n of_o christian_n in_o city_n proceed_v upon_o a_o mere_a mistake_n which_o i_o shall_v clear_o remove_v for_o it_o be_v but_o a_o small_a proportion_n of_o those_o thousand_o that_o can_v in_o reason_n be_v account_v to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o so_o fix_a member_n of_o that_o church_n for_o they_o be_v convert_v at_o one_o of_o the_o great_a feast_n at_o which_o time_n the_o inhabitant_n be_v not_o by_o far_o a_o twenty_o part_n of_o those_o that_o be_v assemble_v in_o the_o city_n this_o exception_n concern_v only_o the_o three_o thousand_o who_o be_v convert_v on_o the_o feast_n of_o pentecost_n but_o the_o five_o thousand_o that_o follow_v and_o the_o multitude_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o the_o multiply_v great_o and_o the_o great_a company_n will_v remain_v to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n notwithstanding_o this_o exception_n for_o our_o author_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o suggest_v that_o these_o accession_n be_v make_v upon_o any_o of_o the_o three_o feast_n and_o therefore_o without_o these_o three_o thousand_o there_o will_v be_v sufficient_a number_n for_o several_a congregation_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v what_o small_a proportion_n the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n 4._o jerusalem_n prim._n ep._n p_o 4._o hold_v to_o the_o multitude_n that_o resort_v thither_o on_o the_o solemn_a feast_n our_o author_n enter_v into_o a_o enquiry_n both_o after_o the_o number_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o that_o city_n and_o of_o those_o that_o resort_v from_o other_o place_n to_o those_o solemnity_n to_o begin_v with_o the_o latter_a of_o these_o 969._o these_o jos_n de_fw-fr bell_n jud._n l._n 7._o c._n 1._o p._n 969._o josephus_n tell_v we_o and_o out_o of_o he_o 5._o he_o h._n e._n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o eusebius_n that_o cestius_n gallus_n willing_a to_o represent_v to_o nero_n who_o contemn_v the_o jew_n the_o strength_n of_o that_o people_n desire_v the_o priest_n to_o take_v a_o account_n of_o the_o number_n and_o to_o make_v the_o story_n short_a from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o pascal-sacrifice_n they_o compute_v all_o the_o jew_n present_v at_o that_o passover_n to_o be_v about_o three_o million_o 5._o million_o pr._n ep._n p._n 5._o but_o then_o they_o be_v all_o in_o a_o manner_n foreigner_n 17._o foreigner_n jos_n b._n j._n l._n 7._o c._n 17._o for_o a_o great_a part_n of_o that_o multitude_n come_v from_o abroad_o whereas_o the_o inhabitans_fw-la of_o jerusalem_n 1._o jerusalem_n jos_n count_v app._n l._n 1._o be_v but_o sixscore_o thousand_o as_o we_o learn_v by_o hecataeus_n and_o that_o we_o may_v not_o fancy_n hecataeus_n to_o have_v under-reckoned_a the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n our_o author_n intimate_v a_o quite_o contrary_a suspicion_n it_o may_v be_v hecataeus_n or_o his_o informer_n overreach_v as_o well_o in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o citizen_n as_o in_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o city_n he_o make_v the_o circuit_n of_o it_o fifty_o furlong_n whereas_o 17._o whereas_o jos_n b._n j._n l._n 6._o c._n 17._o josephus_n say_v it_o be_v but_o thirty-three_a and_o the_o circumvallation_n of_o titus_n but_o thirty-nine_a from_o all_o this_o therefore_o he_o conclude_v that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n upon_o the_o most_o favourable_a computation_n will_v scarce_o make_v the_o twenty_o part_n of_o the_o multitude_n which_o usual_o attend_v those_o feast_n and_o consequent_o not_o a_o twenty_o part_n of_o the_o convert_v mention_v in_o the_o act_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n although_o i_o have_v already_o show_v that_o this_o concern_v only_o the_o three_o thousand_o convert_v on_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n yet_o because_o it_o be_v new_a and_o carry_v with_o it_o the_o air_n of_o demonstration_n i_o will_v beg_v the_o reader_n patience_n while_o i_o let_v he_o see_v with_o how_o great_a pain_n and_o learn_v some_o author_n can_v trifle_v for_o to_o find_v out_o the_o proportion_n between_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o pascal_n assembly_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v the_o number_n of_o each_o at_o the_o same_o time_n or_o at_o leastwise_o in_o the_o same_o age._n now_o hecataeus_n from_o who_o he_o learn_v the_o number_n of_o the_o citizen_n live_v under_o alexander_n the_o great_a and_o ptolemy_n the_o son_n of_o lagus_n but_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o resort_v to_o the_o passover_n be_v take_v by_o the_o order_n of_o cestius_n gallus_n under_o nero_n i._n e._n above_o three_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o year_n after_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o jerusalem_n may_v be_v much_o more_o numerous_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n than_o in_o the_o age_n of_o hecataeus_n and_o therefore_o this_o calculation_n can_v be_v certain_a and_o this_o spectre_n of_o demonstration_n vanish_v that_o i_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o want_v a_o due_a regard_n for_o mr._n clerkson_n diligence_n upon_o this_o point_n i_o will_v not_o dismiss_v his_o calculation_n with_o so_o short_a a_o reply_n but_o examine_v every_o point_n of_o it_o apart_o and_o show_v of_o what_o consequence_n it_o may_v be_v to_o the_o present_a question_n concern_v congregational_a episcopacy_n 1._o the_o three_o million_o return_v to_o nero_n come_v from_o no_o authentic_a census_n or_o any_o certain_a account_n but_o only_o from_o conjecture_n and_o one_o may_v reasonable_o suspect_v that_o the_o priest_n to_o set_v out_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o nation_n to_o a_o prince_n who_o have_v they_o in_o contempt_n will_v be_v apt_a to_o over-reckon_a 2._o jerusalem_n can_v not_o receive_v so_o many_o million_o if_o the_o circuit_n of_o it_o be_v but_o thirty-three_a furlong_n as_o we_o read_v in_o josephus_n and_o our_o author_n do_v contend_v it_o be_v no_o more_o 3._o if_o this_o account_n of_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v admit_v yet_o that_o passover_n may_v be_v extraordinary_a and_o like_o that_o of_o josiah_n of_o which_o it_o be_v say_v 23.22_o say_v 2_o king_n 23.22_o that_o sure_o there_o be_v not_o hold_v such_o a_o passover_n from_o the_o day_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o judge_v israel_n nor_o in_o all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n nor_o of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n and_o that_o this_o number_n be_v extraordinary_a appear_v from_o josephus_n who_o account_v for_o the_o incredible_a number_n say_v to_o be_v slay_v and_o take_v in_o jerusalem_n inform_v we_o that_o the_o jew_n resort_v thither_o out_o of_o all_o the_o country_n and_o be_v unaware_o shut_v up_o in_o that_o fatal_a siege_n and_o yet_o the_o sum_n be_v about_o twelve_o hundred_o thousand_o person_n not_o half_o of_o that_o number_n upon_o which_o our_o author_n calculate_v yet_o this_o seem_v so_o extraordinary_a frob._n extraordinary_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jos_n b._n j._n l._n 6._o c._n 45._o ed._n frob._n that_o josephus_n to_o make_v it_o pass_v observe_v that_o the_o great_a part_n indeed_o be_v jew_n but_o not_o
conclude_v hecataeus_n to_o have_v overreach_v till_o i_o can_v be_v sure_a there_o be_v no_o fault_n in_o the_o copy_n of_o josephus_n or_o that_o our_o author_n do_v right_o understand_v he_o for_o first_o 13._o first_o jos_n b._n j._n l._n 5._o c._n 13._o josephus_n do_v not_o seem_v to_o agree_v with_o himself_o in_o this_o matter_n when_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o three_o wall_n that_o encompass_v the_o city_n he_o make_v the_o three_o to_o have_v ninety_o tower_n 〈◊〉_d tower_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d each_o of_o twenty_o cubit_n diameter_n and_o between_o every_o one_o these_o tower_n a_o curtain_n of_o two_o hundred_o cubit_n which_o be_v sum_v up_o make_v near_o fifty_o furlong_n in_o compass_n or_o if_o we_o take_v 21._o take_v appar_fw-la vrb_n templi_fw-la p._n 1._o l._n 2._o c._n 21._o villalpandus_n his_o reckon_n who_o allow_v but_o four_o hundred_o cubit_n to_o a_o furlong_n we_o shall_v have_v fifty_o furlong_n complete_a nor_o be_v this_o the_o whole_a compass_n of_o the_o city_n for_o this_o wall_n be_v not_o draw_v round_o the_o other_o two_o on_o every_o part_n but_o where_o the_o city_n end_v in_o inaccessible_a precipice_n sup_v precipice_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d jos_n ub_z sup_v there_o be_v but_o one_o wall_n and_o then_o it_o must_v be_v by_o so_o much_o more_o than_o fifty_o furlong_n so_o the_o particular_n and_o the_o sum_n total_a of_o this_o author_n not_o agree_v there_o must_v be_v some_o mistake_n in_o the_o calculation_n but_o several_a learned_a man_n have_v endeavour_v to_o reconcile_v these_o passage_n among_o who_o villalpandus_n 4._o villalpandus_n appar_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o seem_v to_o have_v succeed_v best_o who_o have_v show_v the_o right_a order_n and_o situation_n of_o the_o three_o wall_n out_o of_o josephus_n against_o the_o mistake_n of_o adricomius_n and_o other_o conclude_v with_o great_a probability_n that_o the_o city_n which_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v thirty_o three_o furlong_n about_o be_v the_o old_a city_n contain_v within_o the_o first_o wall_n of_o sixty_o tower_n and_o if_o the_o distance_n between_o these_o be_v equal_a to_o that_o of_o the_o three_o wall_n the_o sum_n will_v be_v exact_o according_a to_o josephus_n his_o measure_n now_o to_o confirm_v this_o conjecture_n it_o must_v be_v observe_v that_o the_o town_n about_o which_o titus_n draw_v his_o vallum_n be_v only_o the_o old_a for_o the_o low_a town_n and_o two_o of_o the_o three_o wall_n be_v take_v by_o the_o roman_n and_o ruin_v before_o that_o circumvallation_n be_v begin_v which_o be_v according_a to_o josephus_n thirty_o nine_o furlong_n and_o it_o be_v this_o which_o be_v proper_o call_v the_o ult_n the_o villalp_n app._n l._n 2._o c._n 10._o ant._n jud._n l._n 15._o c._n ult_n city_n the_o other_o accession_n be_v account_v for_o suburb_n and_o so_o call_v by_o josephus_n nor_o can_v we_o imagine_v either_o that_o the_o roman_n will_v leave_v so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o city_n as_o that_o which_o be_v destroy_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o jew_n or_o contrive_v their_o vallum_n which_o be_v to_o keep_v they_o in_o at_o so_o great_a a_o distance_n from_o the_o remain_a wall_n or_o place_n of_o attack_z as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v if_o the_o circumvallation_n encompass_v that_o part_n which_o be_v before_o ruin_v by_o the_o roman_n and_o quit_v by_o the_o jew_n now_o if_o josephus_n be_v thus_o understand_v he_o be_v not_o only_o reconcile_v to_o himself_o but_o to_o that_o character_n of_o greatness_n which_o pliny_n 4._o pliny_n hierosolyma_n long_a clarissima_fw-la vrbium_fw-la orientis_fw-la non_fw-la judeae_n modo_fw-la plin._n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o give_v jerusalem_n of_o be_v far_o the_o most_o famous_a city_n not_o only_o of_o judea_n but_o of_o all_o the_o east_n inter._n east_n arist_n de_fw-fr 70_o inter._n aristeas_n if_o he_o deserve_v any_o credit_n make_v it_o forty_o furlong_n about_o and_o there_o be_v 3._o be_v miambourg_n croissa_n l._n 3._o who_o represent_v it_o as_o quadrangular_a three_o mile_n in_o length_n and_o something_o less_o in_o breadth_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o liberal_a of_o all_o calculation_n but_o have_v no_o great_a authority_n to_o vouch_v it_o however_o by_o the_o reckon_n of_o josephus_n jerusalem_n be_v more_o than_o fifty_o furlong_n in_o compass_n and_o the_o precipice_n be_v reckon_v where_o there_o be_v but_o one_o wall_n many_o furlong_n more_o may_v remain_v to_o be_v add_v even_o to_o that_o sum_n what_o be_v suggest_v to_o lessen_v the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n 〈◊〉_d jerusalem_n jos_n b._n j._n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o complaint_n make_v to_o the_o idumaean_n that_o they_o have_v destroy_v in_o one_o night_n almost_o all_o the_o people_n when_o there_o be_v but_o twelve_o thousand_o slay_v be_v not_o exact_a enough_o to_o ground_v any_o calculation_n for_o the_o idumaean_n slay_v above_o twenty_o perhaps_o above_o forty_o thousand_o while_n they_o be_v in_o jerusalem_n as_o 19_o as_o jos_n l._n 4._o c._n 17._o c._n 18._o c._n 19_o josephus_n reckon_v for_o the_o first_o night_n the_o idumaean_n be_v let_v in_o they_o slay_v eight_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o person_n not_o in_o the_o city_n but_o about_o the_o temple_n and_o not_o content_a with_o this_o slaughter_n they_o turn_v upon_o the_o city_n and_o kill_v every_o one_o they_o meet_v nor_o do_v it_o end_v thus_o but_o they_o still_o go_v on_o and_o butcher_v the_o people_n like_o a_o herd_n of_o unclean_a beast_n these_o without_o number_n but_o afterward_o take_v many_o person_n of_o condition_n and_o young_a man_n they_o bind_v and_o put_v they_o into_o 〈◊〉_d into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d custody_n hope_v to_o gain_v they_o to_o their_o side_n but_o they_o all_o choose_v rather_o to_o die_v than_o join_v with_o their_o enemy_n whereupon_o they_o be_v torture_v and_o kill_v those_o who_o be_v take_v in_o custody_n in_o the_o day_n be_v slay_v and_o cast_v out_o in_o the_o night_n to_o make_v room_n for_o other_o the_o day_n follow_v who_o be_v also_o destroy_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o the_o number_n of_o those_o young_a people_n of_o quality_n destroy_v in_o that_o manner_n be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v twelve_o thousand_o such_o be_v the_o slaughter_n make_v by_o the_o idumaean_n in_o jerusalem_n that_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o those_o who_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o their_o company_n shall_v represent_v the_o whole_a people_n as_o destroy_v and_o consider_v the_o prodigious_a number_n slay_v by_o the_o faction_n in_o that_o city_n it_o be_v a_o wonder_n there_o shall_v be_v any_o more_o remain_v for_o new_a calamity_n and_o yet_o after_o this_o loss_n the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v so_o formidable_a that_o josephus_n commend_v the_o conduct_n of_o 21._o of_o l._n 4._o c._n 21._o vespasian_n for_o not_o adventure_v to_o attack_v it_o at_o that_o time_n when_o his_o officer_n urge_v he_o to_o march_v his_o army_n thither_o that_o so_o the_o faction_n may_v have_v yet_o more_o leisure_n to_o weaken_v one_o another_o whereas_o if_o the_o people_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o kill_v he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o apprehend_v any_o opposition_n now_o shall_v all_o this_o calculation_n be_v allow_v and_o jerusalem_n reduce_v to_o the_o narrow_a circuit_n and_o the_o low_a reckon_a yet_o i_o can_v see_v what_o benefit_n can_v redound_v to_o the_o notion_n of_o congregational_a episcopacy_n for_o we_o do_v not_o read_v of_o any_o great_a accession_n of_o proselyte_n to_o the_o christian_a faith_n on_o any_o of_o the_o three_o feast_n except_o one_o on_o that_o of_o pentecost_n when_o three_o thousand_o soul_n be_v gain_v but_o since_o that_o there_o be_v many_o add_v daily_o to_o the_o church_n there_o be_v five_o thousand_o convert_v at_o a_o time_n and_o after_o this_o 5.14_o this_o act_n 5.14_o believer_n be_v the_o more_o add_v to_o the_o church_n multitude_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o after_o this_o 6.7_o this_o act_n 6.7_o the_o word_n of_o god_n increase_v and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o disciple_n multiply_v in_o jerusalem_n great_o and_o a_o great_a company_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v obedient_a to_o the_o faith_n these_o accession_n be_v not_o where_o say_v to_o consist_v of_o outly_a jew_n nor_o to_o come_v in_o upon_o solemn_a time_n but_o daily_o and_o all_o this_o to_o fall_v out_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o year_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o the_o tradition_n which_o 18._o which_o eus_n h._n e._n l._n 5._o c._n 18._o apollonius_n a_o ancient_a writer_n cite_v from_o thraseas_n who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o his_o time_n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v by_o
our_o saviour_n not_o to_o depart_v from_o jerusalem_n in_o twelve_o year_n we_o must_v conclude_v the_o number_n of_o proselyte_n must_v needs_o surpass_v the_o measure_n of_o a_o congregation_n if_o the_o success_n of_o follow_v year_n do_v in_o any_o proportion_n answer_v this_o begin_n all_o the_o endeavour_n therefore_o of_o deduction_n from_o the_o number_n of_o convert_v express_v by_o st._n luke_n can_v have_v no_o place_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o 1._o all_o that_o be_v convert_v on_o pentecost_n be_v say_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o apostle_n 2._o apostle_n act_n 2._o fellowship_n and_o break_v of_o bread_n and_o in_o prayer_n i._n e._n to_o stay_v with_o they_o in_o jerusalem_n so_o that_o though_o they_o be_v not_o dweller_n before_o upon_o this_o occasion_n they_o become_v such_o 2._o the_o five_o thousand_o add_v to_o these_o according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o story_n and_o the_o exposition_n of_o all_o the_o ancient_a writer_n will_v afford_v no_o occasion_n for_o any_o deduction_n 3._o the_o increase_n of_o which_o the_o number_n be_v not_o express_v may_v reasonable_o be_v presume_v no_o way_n inferior_a to_o the_o other_o where_o the_o number_n be_v set_v down_o but_o if_o we_o observe_v the_o expression_n seem_v to_o surpass_v they_o for_o when_o five_o thousand_o be_v convert_v it_o be_v say_v that_o many_o of_o those_o who_o hear_v the_o word_n believe_v if_o the_o number_n have_v not_o follow_v this_o will_v have_v pass_v for_o a_o little_a matter_n with_o our_o author_n but_o in_o other_o place_n it_o be_v say_v that_o great_a multitude_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n a_o great_a number_n of_o priest_n etc._n etc._n 4._o while_o the_o apostle_n continue_v in_o jerusalem_n we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v the_o church_n be_v still_o increase_v and_o the_o people_n be_v general_o of_o their_o side_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o miracle_n they_o wrought_v so_o as_o to_o give_v a_o check_n to_o the_o ruler_n and_o to_o restrain_v they_o from_o persecute_v the_o apostle_n it_o can_v be_v well_o doubt_v but_o the_o apostle_n improve_v this_o good_a disposition_n to_o a_o perfect_a conversion_n 5._o beside_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o influence_n of_o the_o convert_v who_o be_v general_o man_n upon_o their_o family_n can_v not_o fail_v of_o have_v great_a effect_n and_o of_o make_v no_o small_a addition_n to_o the_o sum_n of_o believer_n the_o authority_n the_o master_n of_o family_n have_v over_o they_o among_o the_o jew_n be_v very_o great_a and_o the_o submission_n of_o wife_n and_o child_n to_o they_o be_v in_o that_o nation_n very_o implicit_a baghdad_n implicit_a letter_n 17._o from_o baghdad_n it_o be_v the_o receive_a custom_n of_o the_o east_n as_o de_fw-fr la_fw-fr valle_n observe_v that_o the_o woman_n and_o child_n shall_v accommodate_v themselves_o to_o the_o father_n of_o the_o family_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n though_o the_o woman_n have_v before_o they_o marry_v be_v breed_v up_o in_o other_o rule_n 6._o that_o the_o multitude_n convert_v can_v have_v no_o convenience_n in_o jerusalem_n of_o meeting_n in_o one_o assembly_n the_o apostle_n go_v from_o house_n to_o house_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n in_o several_a house_n there_o be_v several_a religious_a assembly_n and_o so_o consequent_o several_a congregation_n so_o that_o the_o multitude_n though_o it_o may_v in_o a_o very_a great_a theatre_n or_o temple_n have_v come_v together_o yet_o for_o want_v of_o such_o accommodation_n begin_v in_o the_o diocesan_n way_n and_o disperse_v into_o several_a assembly_n which_o still_o make_v up_o but_o one_o church_n 6._o church_n prim._n ep._n p._n 6._o it_o be_v confess_v say_v mr._n clerkson_n that_o in_o those_o time_n and_o after_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o city_n and_o if_o the_o christian_n in_o any_o city_n be_v but_o few_o and_o those_o divide_v betwixt_o several_a bishop_n how_o small_a a_o diocese_n will_v the_o share_n of_o each_o make_v up_o for_o this_o he_o cite_v dr._n hammond_n on_o the_o rev._n c._n 11._o p._n 662._o it_o be_v true_a indeed_o d._n h._n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o circumcision_n do_v for_o some_o time_n keep_v at_o some_o distance_n from_o the_o gentile_a convert_v and_o have_v their_o assembly_n and_o officer_n apart_o and_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o other_o remedy_n be_v oblige_v to_o manage_v the_o matter_n so_o tender_o as_o to_o connive_v for_o some_o time_n at_o this_o separation_n but_o this_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n concern_v the_o case_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n within_o the_o time_n of_o her_o increase_n before_o the_o death_n of_o st._n stephen_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o st._n paul_n for_o as_o yet_o no_o gentile_a have_v be_v baptize_v cornelius_n be_v the_o first_o and_o that_o some_o time_n after_o these_o many_o thousand_o have_v be_v convert_v in_o jerusalem_n beside_o be_v this_o allow_v that_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n in_o each_o city_n have_v a_o distinct_a bishop_n yet_o that_o make_v nothing_o for_o the_o congregational_a way_n for_o this_o happen_v upon_o another_o account_n and_o after_o the_o ruin_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o jewish_a commonwealth_n the_o jew_n come_v to_o a_o accommodation_n and_o join_v with_o the_o gentile_n under_o the_o same_o officer_n before_o the_o second_o century_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v of_o no_o consequence_n to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n and_o if_o those_o diocese_n be_v small_a it_o be_v in_o order_n to_o great_a increase_n that_o the_o jew_n may_v be_v for_o a_o little_a while_n indulge_v and_o then_o unite_v with_o the_o gentile_n in_o one_o church_n but_o after_o all_o this_o matter_n of_o separate_a church_n be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o conjecture_n of_o some_o learned_a man_n and_o our_o author_n himself_o be_v willing_a to_o dismiss_v it_o by_o say_v 7._o say_v p._n 7._o that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o this_o acknowledgement_n nor_o will_v he_o insist_v on_o the_o ground_n on_o which_o he_o proceed_v nor_o be_v there_o any_o reason_n he_o shall_v if_o he_o can_v make_v out_o what_o he_o affirm_v in_o the_o same_o place_n that_o there_o be_v evidence_n enough_o in_o scripture_n for_o a_o plurality_n of_o bishop_n in_o several_a city_n which_o may_v be_v easy_o vindicate_v from_o the_o attempt_n of_o some_o that_o will_v deface_v it_o his_o first_o instance_n be_v phil._n 1.1_o to_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v at_o philippi_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n that_o these_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o province_n as_o dr._n hammond_n contend_v and_o not_o of_o the_o city_n of_o philippi_n our_o author_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n allow_v nor_o will_v i_o be_v very_o importunate_a with_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v but_o one_o thing_n i_o will_v learn_v of_o he_o what_o sort_n of_o bishop_n he_o take_v these_o to_o be_v for_o if_o in_o his_o opinion_n they_o be_v no_o other_o than_o presbyter_n than_o this_o place_n be_v impertinent_o allege_v since_o many_o presbyter_n be_v by_o all_o side_n acknowledge_v to_o have_v belong_v to_o one_o church_n but_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o bishop_n in_o the_o common_a ecclesiastical_a sense_n and_o then_o conclude_v from_o this_o passage_n that_o there_o be_v many_o in_o the_o church_n of_o philippi_n his_o opinion_n be_v as_o singular_a as_o that_o of_o the_o doctor_n he_o endeavour_v to_o refute_v for_o my_o part_n i_o must_v profess_v that_o i_o be_o not_o much_o concern_v in_o this_o dispute_n between_o our_o author_n and_o dr._n hammond_n about_o these_o bishop_n i_o can_v never_o find_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v they_o any_o other_o than_o presbyter_n as_o the_o generality_n of_o father_n and_o of_o the_o writer_n of_o our_o own_o church_n have_v do_v and_o though_o i_o have_v great_a reverence_n for_o the_o name_n and_o memory_n of_o dr._n hammond_n yet_o where_o he_o be_v alone_o i_o may_v without_o any_o imputation_n of_o disrespect_n take_v the_o common_a liberty_n of_o leave_v his_o opinion_n to_o stand_v or_o fall_v according_a to_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o argument_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v found_v yet_o there_o be_v some_o thing_n in_o our_o author_n reply_n which_o may_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o dr._n hammond_n 12._o hammond_n 16_o 12._o from_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o act_n where_o philippi_n be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o first_o city_n of_o macedonia_n and_o a_o colony_n infer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o metropolis_n to_o which_o our_o author_n answer_v that_o it_o be_v first_o in_o situation_n 8._o situation_n p._n 8._o and_o not_o in_o dignity_n and_o pre-eminence_n this_o conjecture_n of_o camerarius_fw-la and_o zanchius_n may_v after_o all_o be_v more_o ingenious_a than_o solid_a for_o bezas_n m_o s._n have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n the_o head_n or_o chief_a not_o the_o first_o in_o situation_n and_o the_o syriack_n and_o arabic_a version_n follo_o wit_n now_o the_o most_o ancient_a copy_n as_o it_o be_v suppose_v of_o the_o new_a testament_n now_o extant_a confirm_v by_o two_o old_a version_n may_v weigh_v as_o much_o as_o a_o late_a conjecture_n beside_o philippi_n be_v not_o the_o first_o in_o situation_n as_o be_v pretend_v but_o neapolis_n and_o it_o will_v be_v something_o strange_a if_o dover_n be_v indeed_o the_o first_o town_n of_o england_n that_o he_o who_o pass_v that_o way_n shall_v call_v canterbury_n the_o first_o it_o may_v not_o be_v very_o considerable_a when_o macedon_n be_v reduce_v by_o paulus_n aemilius_n but_o it_o may_v be_v the_o chief_a town_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o country_n when_o st._n luke_n write_v 5_o write_v brev._n c._n 5_o liberatus_n mention_n the_o archbishop_n of_o philippi_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n the_o bishop_n subscribe_v among_o the_o metropolitan_o though_o it_o be_v express_v that_o he_o have_v the_o proxy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n in_o a_o old_a notitia_fw-la he_o be_v metropolitan_a of_o the_o province_n of_o macedon_n and_o so_o sedulius_n style_v he_o and_o tertullian_n praescrip_n tertullian_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n name_v it_o before_o thessalonica_n nor_o will_v i_o contend_v with_o our_o author_n about_o the_o other_o argument_n of_o dr._n hammond_n which_o he_o reject_v that_o philippi_n be_v a_o metropolis_n because_o it_o be_v a_o colony_n it_o do_v not_o indeed_o necessary_o follow_v but_o yet_o roman_n colony_n be_v general_o place_v in_o the_o principal_a city_n of_o province_n and_o endow_v with_o the_o chief_a dignity_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o country_n where_o they_o be_v so_o carthage_n corinth_n caesarea_n and_o many_o other_o may_v be_v name_v but_o if_o it_o be_v the_o head_n of_o that_o part_n of_o the_o country_n and_o a_o colony_n as_o beza_n old_a copy_n have_v it_o this_o dispute_n be_v over_o and_o nothing_o i_o be_o sure_a mr._n clerkson_n have_v produce_v do_v make_v out_o that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o metropolis_n when_o st._n paul_n be_v there_o now_o this_o debate_n concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o philippi_n have_v soon_o be_v at_o a_o end_n if_o our_o author_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o explain_v himself_o and_o tell_v we_o what_o he_o mean_v by_o bishop_n for_o be_v they_o pastor_n of_o single_a elect_a congregation_n respective_o in_o covenant_n then_o there_o must_v have_v be_v several_a church_n or_o congregation_n in_o that_o one_o city_n but_o on_o other_o occasion_n he_o will_v not_o allow_v more_o than_o one_o congregation_n for_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n even_o in_o rome_n itself_o but_o if_o we_o allow_v such_o a_o obscure_a place_n as_o philippi_n to_o have_v many_o church_n so_o early_o we_o can_v avoid_v yield_v to_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o other_o great_a city_n many_o more_o and_o what_o will_v prove_v worse_o than_o all_o those_o church_n must_v be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v all_o under_o one_o bishop_n or_o be_v these_o bishop_n only_a presbyter_n rule_v the_o church_n of_o philippi_n with_o common_a and_o equal_a authority_n then_o our_o author_n must_v give_v up_o the_o question_n and_o instead_o of_o make_v many_o bishop_n must_v own_o that_o there_o be_v none_o at_o all_o there_o but_o only_a presbyter_n will_v he_o contend_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o bishop_n than_o presbyter_n this_o will_v be_v to_o abuse_v his_o reader_n with_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o a_o word_n which_o he_o take_v in_o one_o sense_n and_o the_o church_n in_o another_o that_o many_o presbyter_n may_v belong_v to_o one_o congregation_n none_o ever_o deny_v that_o many_o bishop_n in_o the_o allow_v and_o ecclesiastical_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n have_v the_o oversight_n of_o one_o city_n sound_v strange_a and_o incredible_a to_o the_o ancient_a christian_n chrysostom_n observe_v this_o expression_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o philippi_n seem_v to_o be_v startle_v with_o it_o what_o many_o bishop_n in_o one_o city_n by_o no_o mean_n it_o can_v be_v what_o then_o they_o be_v not_o bishop_n proper_o so_o call_v but_o presbyter_n the_o same_o poor_a sophistry_n be_v carry_v on_o 10._o on_o prim._n ep._n p._n 10._o under_o the_o colour_n of_o another_o text._n 20.17_o text._n act_n 20.17_o st._n paul_n from_o miletus_n send_v to_o ephesus_n and_o call_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n who_o be_v say_v v._o 28._o to_o be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n now_o these_o elder_n or_o bishop_n belong_v to_o the_o city-church_n of_o ephesus_n as_o our_o author_n contend_v and_o not_o to_o the_o province_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v several_a bishop_n in_o the_o same_o city_n but_o if_o we_o demand_v here_o again_o what_o bishop_n be_v here_o mean_v whether_o these_o be_v bishop_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o present_a question_n or_o presbyter_n only_o the_o objection_n vanish_v and_o leave_v the_o reader_n to_o wonder_v that_o any_o man_n shall_v so_o solemn_o undertake_v to_o prove_v what_o no_o man_n ever_o doubt_v that_o in_o scripture-time_n there_o be_v many_o presbyter_n over_o one_o church_n but_o dr._n hammond_n will_v have_v these_o bishop_n to_o be_v suffragans_fw-la of_o ephesus_n and_o mr._n clerkson_n with_o all_o his_o force_n do_v endeavour_v to_o disprove_v they_o to_o have_v be_v city_n bishop_n now_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o this_o contention_n we_o may_v be_v very_o safe_a from_o the_o danger_n of_o congregational_a episcopacy_n for_o if_o dr._n hammond_n way_n prevail_v these_o bishop_n must_v have_v each_o a_o city_n and_o territory_n and_o be_v diocesan_n either_o actual_o or_o in_o right_n if_o mr._n clerkson_n carry_v it_o then_o proper_o speak_v there_o may_v not_o be_v a_o bishop_n among_o they_o all_o for_o they_o be_v but_o presbyter_n belong_v not_o to_o several_a independent_a congregation_n but_o to_o one_o church_n and_o may_v have_v a_o bishop_n to_o who_o they_o be_v subject_a as_o the_o ancient_n believe_v they_o have_v and_o think_v timothy_n to_o be_v the_o person_n and_o here_o he_o muster_v up_o great_a force_n against_o dr._n hammond_n opinion_n and_o affirm_v 11._o affirm_v pr._n ep._n p._n 10_o 11._o that_o the_o text_n itself_o the_o syriack_n version_n chrysostom_n theophilact_fw-mi oecumenius_n and_o theodoret_n and_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o ancient_n be_v against_o this_o new_a sense_n not_o any_o favour_v it_o but_o one_o among_o they_o all_o but_o what_o sense_n be_v these_o ancient_n for_o that_o there_o be_v many_o bishop_n of_o one_o city-church_n nothing_o less_o for_o they_o all_o declare_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o these_o be_v no_o other_o than_o presbyter_n but_o there_o happen_v to_o be_v one_o for_o the_o doctor_n new_a sense_n our_o author_n do_v not_o name_v he_o it_o be_v irenaeus_n and_o it_o seem_v something_o incongruous_a to_o call_v that_o sense_n new_a which_o be_v vouch_v by_o so_o ancient_a authority_n for_o this_o father_n be_v judge_v by_o iraen_n by_o diss_n 3._o in_o iraen_n mr._n dodwel_n to_o be_v bear_v in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o first_o century_n or_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o the_o second_o he_o converse_v with_o polycarp_n as_o himself_o declare_v who_o martyrdom_n according_a to_o the_o computation_n of_o bishop_n seq_fw-la bishop_n diss_n post_n 2._o c._n 14._o et_fw-la seq_fw-la pearson_n can_v not_o be_v late_a than_o the_o year_n 147._o and_o therefore_o must_v have_v live_v forty_o year_n of_o the_o first_o century_n he_o be_v bishop_n of_o smyrna_n which_o be_v under_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o ephesus_n and_o may_v understand_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o place_n more_o of_o st._n paul_n visitation_n than_o be_v record_v by_o st._n luke_n and_o so_o be_v more_o particular_a in_o note_v the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n that_o the_o apostle_n call_v to_o he_o to_o miletus_n and_o express_v himself_o therefore_o in_o that_o manner_n c_o have_v call_v together_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n and_o the_o other_o neighbour_a city_n now_o if_o authority_n go_v by_o weight_n and_o not_o by_o number_n dr._n hammond_n case_n will_v not_o appear_v so_o desperate_a for_o though_o many_o name_n be_v produce_v against_o he_o yet_o several_a of_o they_o be_v very_a light_n for_o oecumenius_n and_o theophilact_fw-mi may_v be_v discount_v as_o transcriber_n of_o chrysostom_n who_o with_o theodoret_n will_v scarce_o weigh_v down_o the_o credit_n of_o irenaeus_n in_o a_o case_n of_o this_o nature_n for_o they_o speak_v only_o by_o conjecture_n whereas_o he_o may_v have_v near_a notice_n from_o tradition_n however_o it_o be_v yet_o our_o author_n shall_v have_v call_v this_o sense_n any_o thing_n rather_o than_o new_a since_o it_o be_v
this_o diffidence_n and_o caution_n do_v that_o learned_a man_n propose_v his_o opinion_n which_o together_o with_o the_o testimony_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v ground_v seq_n ground_v vindic._n of_o the_o prim._n ch._n p._n 34._o and_o seq_n have_v be_v consider_v at_o large_a in_o another_o place_n and_o i_o be_o not_o willing_a here_o to_o transcribe_v yet_o that_o i_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o decline_v a_o answer_n in_o this_o place_n i_o will_v give_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o be_v there_o answer_v and_o add_v something_o for_o future_a explication_n first_o then_o altar_n in_o the_o primitive_a sense_n signify_v not_o only_o the_o communion_n table_n but_o the_o whole_a place_n where_o the_o chair_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o seat_n of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v place_v and_o in_o this_o sense_n there_o be_v but_o one_o altar_n in_o one_o diocese_n as_o there_o be_v now_o but_o one_o consistory_n this_o be_v explain_v by_o passage_n out_o of_o ignatius_n cyprian_n and_o archbishop_n usher_n and_o to_o be_v within_o the_o altar_n which_o be_v ignatius_n his_o phrase_n be_v no_o other_o than_o to_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o the_o one_o altar_n be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o communion_n which_o may_v be_v hold_v in_o different_a place_n and_o at_o several_a table_n beside_o some_o passage_n cite_v out_o of_o ignatius_n about_o one_o altar_n be_v only_o allusive_a to_o the_o jewish_a temple_n and_o altar_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o be_v urge_v too_o strict_o last_o the_o name_n of_o altar_n may_v be_v appropriate_v to_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n church_n upon_o another_o account_n and_o that_o be_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v present_v there_o only_o and_o from_o thence_o distribution_n be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o occasion_n of_o the_o church_n among_o other_o oblation_n be_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n which_o be_v to_o serve_v for_o the_o sacrament_n these_o be_v always_o bless_v at_o the_o bishop_n altar_n though_o not_o always_o consecrate_v there_o concern_v these_o oblation_n preparatory_a to_o the_o sacrament_n mr._n mede_n have_v give_v a_o judicious_a account_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n where_o he_o show_v these_o offering_n be_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o these_o gift_n the_o table_n may_v receive_v its_o name_n of_o altar_n for_o as_o the_o jew_n have_v but_o one_o altar_n on_o which_o their_o sacrifice_n be_v offer_v and_o unessayed_v yet_o be_v they_o eat_v at_o several_a table_n so_o the_o bishop_n altar_n may_v serve_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n at_o least_o within_o the_o same_o city_n to_o receive_v those_o oblation_n which_o be_v to_o be_v communicate_v in_o different_a place_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o rome_n in_o pope_n innocent_a decent_a innocent_a innoc._n ep._n ad_fw-la decent_a the_o first_o his_o time_n who_o send_v the_o bread_n already_o consecrate_v to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n but_o do_v not_o send_v any_o to_o such_o presbyter_n as_o be_v place_v in_o remote_a cemitery_n since_o they_o may_v consecrate_v themselves_o and_o as_o for_o country_n parish_n he_o do_v not_o think_v it_o convenient_a the_o holy_a consecrate_a bread_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o they_o for_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v it_o shall_v be_v carry_v to_o place_n remote_a so_o all_o though_o not_o present_v in_o the_o same_o place_n do_v yet_o partake_v of_o one_o altar_n and_o eat_v of_o the_o same_o spiritual_a bread_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n perhaps_o may_v most_o commodious_o be_v understand_v that_o note_a passage_n of_o justin_n martyr_n concern_v the_o administration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o christian_a assembly_n where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o deacon_n distribute_v it_o to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a and_o carry_v it_o to_o those_o who_o be_v not_o present_a for_o to_o all_o who_o be_v not_o present_a as_o they_o be_v disperse_v in_o their_o several_a dwelling_n it_o can_v not_o convenient_o be_v carry_v by_o the_o deacon_n beside_o that_o in_o numerous_a congregation_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o know_v who_o be_v not_o present_a nor_o be_v valesius_fw-la 24._o valesius_fw-la annot._n in_o euseb_n l._n 5._o c._n 24._o his_o conjecture_n very_o probable_a who_o will_v send_v it_o to_o person_n of_o other_o diocese_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v most_o probable_a that_o it_o be_v carry_v from_o the_o bishop_n church_n to_o other_o assembly_n in_o the_o same_o city_n nor_o will_v this_o look_v strange_a for_o those_o time_n that_o the_o holy_a bread_n shall_v be_v send_v from_o the_o bishop_n altar_n to_o other_o church_n of_o the_o same_o city_n when_o it_o be_v usual_a to_o send_v it_o into_o remote_a country_n and_o diocese_n as_o a_o symbol_n of_o communion_n the_o old_a bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o 24._o before_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 5._o c_o 24._o victor_n time_n use_v to_o send_v such_o present_n and_o jan._n and_o act._n lucian_n ap_fw-mi metaph._n 7._o jan._n lucian_n the_o martyr_n send_v they_o from_o his_o prison_n so_o paulinus_n 1._o paulinus_n paul_n ep._n 1._o do_v to_o severus_n this_o practice_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o synod_n 〈◊〉_d synod_n can._n 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o ladicea_n that_o the_o holy_a mystery_n shall_v not_o be_v send_v abroad_o into_o other_o diocese_n which_o zonaras_n observe_v to_o have_v be_v a_o very_a ancient_a custom_n and_o this_o forbid_v it_o to_o be_v carry_v into_o other_o diocese_n seem_v to_o allow_v its_o be_v carry_v from_o the_o bishop_n church_n to_o other_o place_n of_o the_o same_o diocese_n after_o mr._n mede_n 16._o mede_n prim._n ep._n p._n 16._o dr._n hammond_n be_v bring_v in_o a_o witness_n of_o this_o notion_n of_o one_o altar_n 15._o altar_n in_o re_fw-la incomperta_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la audacter_fw-la nimis_fw-la pronunciandum_fw-la ham._n diss_n 3._o c._n 8._o s._n 15._o he_o mention_n it_o indeed_o as_o the_o opinion_n of_o some_o learned_a man_n but_o he_o himself_o make_v no_o judgement_n concern_v it_o leave_v the_o matter_n as_o uncertain_a and_o decline_v to_o pronounce_v any_o thing_n in_o a_o point_n so_o obscure_a bishop_n taylor_n assert_v taylor_n episc_n assert_v be_v likewise_o force_v to_o appear_v in_o this_o cause_n mere_o because_o he_o cite_v damasus_n in_o the_o life_n of_o pope_n marcellus_n who_o be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v twenty_o five_o title_n as_o so_o many_o diocese_n for_o baptism_n and_o penance_n from_o whence_o the_o bishop_n be_v say_v 16._o say_v prim._n ep_v p._n 16._o to_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v yet_o no_o preach_n in_o parish_n and_o but_o one_o pulpit_n in_o a_o diocese_n and_o further_o damasus_n and_o the_o doctor_n out_o of_o he_o leave_v we_o evident_o to_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v no_o communion_n table_n but_o in_o the_o mother_n church_n and_o this_o three_o hundred_o and_o five_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o at_o rome_n too_o it_o be_v not_o very_o advisable_v to_o conclude_v any_o thing_n too_o hasty_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o pretend_a damasus_n it_o cost_v such_o counterfeit_v nothing_o to_o build_v twenty_o church_n in_o a_o day_n and_o to_o consign_v they_o to_o what_o use_v they_o please_v but_o this_o impostor_n as_o he_o have_v little_a wit_n so_o in_o this_o instance_n his_o luck_n be_v very_o bad_a to_o make_v so_o many_o convert_v and_o to_o erect_v so_o many_o title_n in_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o and_o five_o when_o the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v persecute_v the_o christian_n to_o utter_v extirpation_n and_o when_o there_o be_v not_o a_o church_n or_o title_n stand_v in_o rome_n this_o be_v the_o three_o year_n of_o the_o persecution_n according_a to_o xi_o to_o baluz_fw-fr chron._n mart._n ex_fw-la lact._n dodw._n di._n 8._o cypr._n xi_o lactantius_n or_o the_o second_o according_a to_o eusebius_n and_o therefore_o a_o sorry_a time_n for_o convert_v and_o make_v of_o title_n and_o baptistry_n so_o that_o the_o relation_n be_v fabulous_a and_o forge_v by_o one_o who_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o those_o time_n the_o inference_n make_v from_o it_o must_v drop_v it_o be_v sure_o not_o very_o well_o contrive_v to_o multiply_v church_n for_o baptism_n and_o to_o leave_v but_o one_o communion_n table_n for_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o rome_n for_o one_o baptistry_n may_v serve_v the_o great_a city_n because_o man_n be_v baptize_v but_o once_o and_o that_o not_o all_o together_o but_o at_o several_a time_n and_o in_o ancient_a time_n no_o city_n have_v more_o unless_o where_o the_o magnificence_n of_o emperor_n or_o bishop_n make_v as_o it_o be_v many_o cathedral_n and_o at_o this_o time_n in_o the_o city_n of_o florence_n lasselina_n florence_n pflaumern_n merc._n ital._n lasselina_n reckon_v among_o
the_o chief_a of_o italy_n all_o the_o child_n be_v christen_v in_o one_o font_n in_o the_o old_a church_n of_o st._n john_n which_o leandro_n alberti_n baptisterium_fw-la alberti_n gloss_n v._o baptisterium_fw-la say_v be_v a_o temple_n of_o mars_n which_o dufresne_n observe_v tanquam_fw-la veteris_fw-la moris_fw-la institutum_fw-la it_o be_v the_o old_a way_n for_o all_o who_o live_v in_o or_o near_o the_o same_o city_n to_o be_v baptize_v in_o one_o church_n i._n e._n the_o cathedral_n but_o the_o use_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v more_o general_a and_o more_o constant_a for_o every_o lord_n day_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n all_o the_o faithful_a receive_v the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o it_o do_v require_v more_o time_n and_o more_o room_n than_o any_o other_o office_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o more_o may_v pray_v together_o or_o hear_v the_o scripture_n or_o a_o sermon_n with_o convenience_n than_o can_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v deliver_v 43._o deliver_v eus_n h._n e._n l._n 6._o c._n 43._o with_o a_o form_n of_o word_n to_o every_o person_n that_o receive_v it_o to_o which_o the_o receiver_n answer_v amen_n so_o that_o in_o a_o numerous_a congregation_n it_o must_v grow_v inconvenient_a and_o soon_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o several_a other_o church_n wherefore_o it_o seem_v most_o probable_a that_o the_o christian_a assembly_n be_v first_o part_v on_o this_o account_n and_o title_n or_o parish-church_n erect_v as_o supplement_n of_o the_o chief_a altar_n let_v a_o man_n but_o consider_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n under_o 43._o under_o eus_n h._n e._n l._n 6._o c._n 43._o cornelius_n when_o above_o fifteen_o hundred_o person_n be_v maintain_v from_o the_o public_a stock_n of_o the_o church_n what_o number_n of_o believer_n there_o must_v be_v in_o that_o city_n and_o then_o let_v he_o conceive_v if_o he_o can_v how_o so_o many_o thousand_o can_v meet_v every_o lord_n day_n in_o one_o church_n and_o receive_v the_o communion_n at_o one_o altar_n and_o in_o lion_n c_o where_o in_o severus_n his_o time_n there_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v eighteen_o thousand_o christian_n it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o conceive_v how_o one_o altar_n can_v be_v sufficient_a we_o be_v tell_v indeed_o that_o we_o have_v many_o thousand_o in_o a_o parish_n that_o have_v but_o one_o altar_n but_o if_o our_o communion_n 1._o communion_n irenaeus_n martyrizatus_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la omni_fw-la populo_fw-la christianorum_fw-la xviii_o m._n throne_n s._n benig_n ap_fw-mi dacher_n t._n 1._o be_v as_o frequent_v and_o as_o numerous_a as_o those_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n many_o altar_n i_o be_o sure_a will_v be_v necessary_a to_o such_o parish_n to_o conclude_v the_o word_n of_o the_o counterfeit_a damasus_n now_o under_o debate_n do_v not_o deny_v to_o those_o parish-church_n the_o administration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o when_o he_o appoint_v they_o for_o baptism_n and_o penance_n he_o do_v not_o exclude_v all_o other_o christian_a office_n such_o as_o prayer_n read_v of_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o communion_n but_o name_v those_o of_o baptism_n and_o penance_n because_o even_o in_o his_o time_n they_o be_v not_o allow_v to_o every_o parish-church_n but_o this_o damasus_n live_v late_a than_o to_o think_v of_o a_o church_n without_o mass_n or_o without_o a_o altar_n and_o he_o have_v take_v care_v not_o only_o for_o such_o church_n but_o for_o the_o sepulcher_n of_o martyr_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v altar_n raise_v over_o they_o and_o mass_n celebrate_v long_o before_o the_o time_n of_o marcellus_n and_o ascribe_v the_o order_n of_o that_o matter_n to_o 1._o to_o pseud_n damas_n in_o felix_n 1._o felix_n 1._o and_o 275._o and_o baron_fw-fr an._n 275._o baronius_n seem_v to_o be_v trouble_v that_o this_o author_n have_v not_o do_v it_o soon_o and_o therefore_o think_v fit_a to_o let_v the_o reader_n know_v that_o all_o this_o have_v be_v provide_v before_o and_o last_o the_o expression_n quasi_fw-la dioceses_fw-la refer_v to_o baptism_n and_o penance_n import_n that_o those_o service_n indeed_o belong_v only_o to_o a_o cathedral_n and_o therefore_o the_o grant_n of_o those_o privilege_n to_o parish_n make_v they_o seem_v like_o diocese_n whereas_o 2._o whereas_o innoc._n ep._n ad_fw-la dacen_n aug._n conf._n c._n 2._o vid._n euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o l._n 9_o c._n 2._o every_o martyrium_fw-la every_o cemitery_n and_o common_a title_n have_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o communion_n that_o there_o be_v no_o preach_n in_o the_o parish_n of_o rome_n may_v very_o well_o be_v grant_v without_o reduce_v the_o christian_n to_o a_o single_a congregation_n for_o if_o 〈◊〉_d if_o soz._n l._n 7._o c._n 19_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sozomen_n be_v not_o misinform_v there_o be_v no_o preach_n in_o any_o church_n in_o rome_n not_o in_o the_o bishop_n for_o in_o rome_n neither_o the_o bishop_n nor_o any_o other_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o valesius_fw-la take_v notice_n that_o we_o have_v no_o homily_n of_o any_o roman_a bishop_n before_o leo_n 1._o and_o to_o confirm_v this_o of_o the_o historian_n he_o observe_v that_o cassiodore_n who_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o city_n have_v translate_v this_o passage_n which_o he_o will_v scarce_o have_v do_v and_o publish_v it_o in_o rome_n itself_o if_o he_o have_v not_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a 17._o true_a prim._n ep_v p._n 16_o 17._o to_o carry_v on_o this_o notion_n of_o but_o one_o assembly_n of_o christian_n in_o the_o great_a city_n 276._o city_n petau._n animad_fw-la in_o epiph._n p._n 276._o petavius_n be_v cite_v with_o a_o ample_a character_n that_o he_o have_v no_o superior_a for_o learning_n among_o the_o jesuit_n nor_o any_o to_o who_o prelacy_n be_v more_o oblige_v but_o our_o author_n be_v as_o much_o oblige_v to_o he_o as_o the_o prelate_n if_o while_o other_o witness_n speak_v doubtful_o and_o with_o reserve_v he_o be_v positive_a that_o in_o the_o four_o age_n there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n or_o title_n ordinary_o in_o a_o city_n and_o prove_v it_o by_o epiphanius_n who_o speak_v of_o more_o title_n in_o alexandria_n as_o a_o thing_n singular_a and_o peculiar_a to_o that_o city_n there_o be_v no_o instance_n thereof_o but_o in_o rome_n i_o be_o willing_a to_o believe_v our_o author_n do_v not_o read_v that_o place_n himself_o but_o take_v it_o upon_o trust_n for_o petavius_n affirm_v there_o the_o direct_a contrary_n to_o that_o for_o which_o our_o author_n make_v he_o so_o positive_a for_o these_o be_v his_o word_n you_o may_v guess_v say_v he_o that_o this_o be_v a_o singular_a manner_n of_o alexandria_n or_o at_o leastwise_o in_o use_n in_o very_a few_o church_n that_o epiphanius_n make_v so_o particular_a mention_n of_o this_o way_n of_o alexandria_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v peculiar_a to_o that_o church_n but_o the_o same_o thing_n have_v be_v long_o before_o order_v elsewhere_o particular_o in_o rome_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o there_o be_v many_o title_n or_o church_n within_o the_o pomaeria_fw-la of_o the_o great_a city_n since_o the_o people_n can_v not_o all_o meet_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o one_o church_n and_o therefore_o have_v presbyter_n appoint_v for_o those_o church_n into_o which_o the_o christian_n be_v distribute_v in_o small_a and_o less_o populous_a town_n there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n in_o which_o all_o be_v assemble_v together_o such_o as_o the_o city_n of_o cyprus_n be_v upon_o which_o account_n epiphanius_n observe_v the_o manner_n of_o alexandria_n as_o a_o unusual_a thing_n and_o strange_a to_o his_o people_n this_o be_v what_o petavius_n deliver_v there_o you_o may_v guess_v say_v he_o as_o our_o author_n fancy_n that_o this_o be_v peculiar_a to_o alexandria_n but_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v order_v elsewhere_o and_o he_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o it_o be_v so_o in_o all_o the_o great_a city_n but_o that_o petavius_n shall_v prove_v this_o also_o by_o the_o council_n of_o neocaesarea_n can_v 13._o be_v a_o oversight_n yet_o stranger_n for_o though_o petavius_n cite_v that_o canon_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o to_o prove_v this_o or_o any_o thing_n like_o it_o but_o have_v enter_v into_o a_o discourse_n about_o chorepiscopi_fw-la he_o show_v from_o that_o canon_n that_o they_o be_v bishop_n and_o not_o presbyter_n because_o they_o have_v the_o privilege_n of_o officiate_a in_o the_o city-church_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n or_o his_o presbyter_n whereas_o that_o privilege_n be_v express_o deny_v the_o country-presbyter_n but_o how_o our_o author_n come_v to_o fancy_v this_o passage_n to_o be_v for_o his_o purpose_n i_o will_v not_o undertake_v to_o divine_v i_o have_v hitherto_o only_o show_v what_o petavius_n have_v observe_v concern_v the_o alexandrian_a parish_n but_o whether_o his_o observation_n be_v just_a be_v another_o question_n
for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v find_v any_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o cyprian_a city_n be_v so_o small_a or_o if_o they_o be_v that_o epiphanius_n will_v upon_o that_o account_n have_v make_v such_o a_o frigid_a observation_n as_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o as_o a_o singularity_n in_o alexandria_n which_o be_v common_a to_o every_o great_a city_n that_o which_o be_v peculiar_a to_o alexandria_n be_v this_o that_o the_o parish_n be_v assign_v to_o fix_a presbyter_n which_o have_v be_v elsewhere_o observe_v 66._o observe_v vind._n of_o prim._n ch_z p._n 65_o 66._o the_o title_n of_o rome_n be_v serve_v by_o the_o presbyter_n in_o common_a as_o 15._o as_o val._n annot._n in_o sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 15._o valesius_fw-la observe_v out_o of_o innocent_a 1._o epistle_n to_o decentius_n and_o what_o he_o add_v of_o his_o own_o as_o more_o proper_a to_o show_v that_o in_o 739._o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d athan._n ap._n 2._o t._n 1._o p._n 739._o julius_n 1._o his_o time_n there_o be_v parish_n appropriate_v to_o certain_a presbyter_n have_v but_o a_o slight_a foundation_n for_o the_o expression_n of_o athanasius_n though_o it_o may_v bear_v the_o sense_n of_o valesius_fw-la seem_v to_o be_v more_o natural_o and_o simple_o render_v by_o nannius_n that_o vito_n the_o roman_a presbyter_n assemble_v fifty_o bishop_n and_o not_o that_o fifty_o bishop_n assemble_v in_o vito_n be_v church_n or_o the_o place_n where_o he_o assemble_v the_o people_n this_o periphrasis_n seem_v too_o frigid_a and_o affect_v when_o every_o church_n have_v its_o proper_a name_n by_o which_o it_o be_v call_v it_o may_v perhaps_o seem_v strange_a that_o a_o presbyter_n shall_v assemble_v and_o preside_v over_o bishop_n it_o be_v strange_a indeed_o if_o he_o shall_v do_v it_o in_o his_o own_o right_n but_o when_o he_o act_n as_o the_o deputy_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n this_o will_v be_v no_o wonder_n for_o the_o legate_n of_o bishop_n always_o sit_v in_o the_o place_n that_o belong_v to_o those_o they_o represent_v though_o themselves_o be_v but_o presbyter_n or_o sometime_o deacon_n and_o that_o vito_n shall_v be_v appoint_v to_o preside_v in_o this_o synod_n be_v answerable_a to_o the_o character_n and_o employment_n he_o have_v bear_v before_o for_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v the_o person_n 〈◊〉_d person_n sozom._n l._n 1._o c._n 17._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phot._n ep._n 1._o de_fw-la 7._o syn._n niceph_n cal._n l._n 8._o c._n 14._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d send_v by_o sylvester_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a with_o vincentius_n for_o though_o the_o latin_a writer_n often_o call_v he_o victor_n yet_o the_o greek_n constant_o write_v vito_n and_o the_o latin_n sometime_o vitus_n the_o fit_a person_n sure_o to_o moderate_v in_o a_o synod_n where_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v concern_v in_o which_o he_o have_v so_o eminent_a a_o part_n there_o be_v one_o thing_n more_o observable_a in_o the_o distribution_n of_o parish_n and_o presbyter_n in_o rome_n which_o i_o can_v omit_v because_o i_o do_v not_o know_v that_o have_v be_v take_v notice_n of_o by_o any_o it_o be_v that_o every_o church_n in_o rome_n have_v two_o presbyter_n to_o attend_v it_o and_o not_o one_o only_a as_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n this_o information_n we_o have_v from_o hilary_n the_o roman_a deacon_n in_o his_o comment_n on_o aegri_fw-la on_o ambr._n in_o 1_o tim._n c._n 3._o nunc_fw-la autem_fw-la septem_fw-la diaconos_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la &_o aliquantos_fw-la presbyteros_fw-la ut_fw-la bini_fw-la per_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la &_o unus_fw-la in_o civitate_fw-la episcopus_fw-la omni_fw-la enim_fw-la hebdomada_fw-la offerendum_fw-la est_fw-la etsi_fw-la non_fw-la quotidie_fw-la peregrinis_fw-la incolis_fw-la tamen_fw-la vel_fw-la bis_fw-la in_o heb._n domada_n etsi_fw-la non_fw-la desint_fw-la qui_fw-la prope_fw-la quotidie_fw-la baptizentur_fw-la aegri_fw-la 1_o tim._n c._n 3._o which_o be_v publish_v among_o the_o work_n of_o st._n ambrose_n but_o observe_v long_o since_o by_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v the_o work_n of_o this_o luciferian_a deacon_n this_o author_n speak_v of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o part_n of_o the_o jewish_a temple_n note_n that_o they_o have_v twenty_o four_o course_n of_o priest_n but_o now_o we_o must_v have_v but_o seven_o deacon_n and_o rome_n have_v no_o more_o as_o sozomen_n 19_o sozomen_n sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 19_o observe_v whereas_o other_o church_n confine_v themselves_o to_o no_o definite_a number_n and_o beside_o these_o deacon_n there_o must_v be_v such_o a_o number_n of_o presbyter_n that_o there_o may_v be_v two_o for_o every_o church_n for_o the_o inhabitant_n communicate_v twice_o a_o week_n januar._n week_n vid._n hieron_n apol._n adv_o jovin_n et_fw-fr august_n ep._n 118._o ad_fw-la januar._n and_o their_o sick_a be_v to_o be_v baptise_a almost_o every_o day_n who_o according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o those_o time_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o communion_n upon_o which_o account_n they_o be_v mention_v in_o this_o place_n but_o to_o put_v this_o matter_n beyond_o all_o doubt_n it_o be_v evident_a from_o several_a writer_n cotemporary_a with_o epiphanius_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v note_v as_o a_o singularity_n in_o alexandria_n to_o have_v many_o parish_n church_n in_o it_o since_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v occasional_o report_v of_o most_o great_a city_n in_o that_o time_n in_o rome_n parnen_n rome_n opt._n milev_n l._n 2._o con_v parnen_n optatus_n inform_v we_o that_o there_o be_v above_o forty_o church_n when_o victor_n garbiensis_fw-la come_v thither_o which_o be_v long_o before_o his_o time_n and_o it_o will_v be_v as_o much_o to_o our_o purpose_n if_o optatus_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o state_n of_o rome_n in_o his_o own_o time_n since_o he_o write_v under_o valens_n opt._n valens_n hieron_n in_o catal._n in_o opt._n as_o st._n jerom_n inform_v we_o who_o die_v in_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o seventy_o eight_o but_o optatus_n write_v about_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o seventy_o as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o his_o own_o word_n 3_o word_n opt._n l._n 1._o v._n 3_o where_o he_o reckon_v but_o sixty_o and_o odd_a year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o dioclesian_n persecution_n to_o the_o time_n of_o his_o write_n but_o epiphanius_n panor_n epiphanius_n epiph._n in_o prolog_n panor_n begin_v his_o work_n against_o heresy_n in_o the_o year_n three_o hundred_o seventy_o four_o when_o he_o write_v of_o the_o manichee_n 1_o manichee_n epiph_n haer._n 66._o n._n 20._o anim._n petau._n 1_o it_o be_v the_o year_n seventy_o six_o the_o arian_n heresy_n come_v afterward_o at_o some_o distance_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o this_o custom_n of_o alexandria_n so_o that_o make_v the_o large_a allowance_n that_o can_v be_v require_v for_o optatus_n his_o word_n he_o must_v be_v grant_v to_o have_v write_v before_o epiphanius_n in_o milan_n there_o be_v many_o church_n at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o st._n ambrose_n 85._o ambrose_n ambr._n ep._n 33._o id_fw-la ep._n 85._o name_v several_a for_o example_n portiana_n nova_n vetus_fw-la ambratiana_n romana_n faustae_fw-la in_o constantinople_n we_o have_v a_o account_n of_o many_o church_n before_o epiphanius_n his_o time_n 48._o time_n euseb_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr vit_fw-fr const_n c._n 48._o for_o constantine_n build_v there_o many_o oratory_n and_o vast_a church_n as_o well_o within_o the_o city_n as_o the_o suburb_n 16._o suburb_n socr._n l._n 1._o c._n 16._o socrates_n name_n two_o that_o of_o irene_n and_o the_o apostle_n the_o former_a be_v afterward_o join_v to_o sophia_n 16._o sophia_n id._n l._n 2._o c._n 16._o by_o constantius_n though_o it_o be_v from_o a_o small_a church_n raise_v by_o constantine_n to_o be_v very_o magnificent_a and_o large_a yet_o his_o son_n build_v a_o great_a church_n hard_a by_o it_o conclude_v both_o in_o one_o enclosure_n and_o under_o one_o name_n 〈◊〉_d name_n theoph._n in_o chron._n niceph._n hist_n l._n 7._o c._n 49._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theophanes_n and_o nicephorus_n calistus_n reckon_v other_o as_o three_z to_o the_o honour_n of_o christ_n under_o several_a denomination_n of_o wisdom_n peace_n and_o power_n one_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o beside_o these_o he_o build_v martyria_fw-la for_o mocius_fw-la acacius_n agathonicus_fw-la and_o menas_n in_o 342._o in_o an._n 342._o constantius_n his_o time_n there_o be_v mention_n of_o the_o church_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o constantinople_n 12._o constantinople_n socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o in_o short_a the_o historian_n who_o speak_v of_o that_o city_n from_o constantin_n the_o great_a downward_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o city_n as_o familiar_o as_o we_o shall_v of_o those_o of_o london_n without_o take_v any_o notice_n of_o it_o as_o a_o unusual_a thing_n so_o the_o bishop_n of_o c._n p._n be_v sometime_o style_v from_o the_o church_n sometime_o from_o the_o
church_n of_o that_o 1._o that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n 2._o c._n 6._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 27._o socr._n l._n 4._o 1._o city_n so_o socrates_n speak_v of_o alexander_n who_o be_v bishop_n there_o in_o constantin_n time_n so_o macedonius_n be_v say_v to_o possess_v himself_o of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o city_n instance_n of_o this_o kind_n there_o be_v without_o number_n but_o i_o will_v conclude_v with_o fine_a with_o greg._n naz._n orat_fw-la coram_fw-la 150._o ep._n in_o fine_a gregory_n nazianzen_n apostrophe_n to_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n when_o he_o take_v his_o leave_n of_o they_o farewell_o resurrection_n thou_o auspicious_a name_n for_o thou_o have_v raise_v up_o my_o speech_n when_o it_o be_v yet_o contemn_v thou_o happy_a field_n of_o common_a victory_n in_o which_o i_o first_o pitch_v my_o tent._n and_o thou_o that_o great_a and_o celebrate_a temple_n now_o become_v a_o new_a accession_n to_o the_o faith_n and_o make_v great_a by_o the_o doctrine_n preach_v in_o thou_o than_o by_o the_o vastness_n of_o thy_o pile_n which_o from_o a_o profane_a jebus_n i_o have_v consecrate_v into_o a_o jerusalem_n and_o all_o you_o other_o church_n which_o after_o this_o adorn_v every_o part_n of_o this_o city_n by_o your_o several_a beauty_n and_o tie_v they_o together_o like_v so_o many_o band_n each_o take_n to_o its_o own_o proper_a resort_n that_o which_o be_v next_o to_o it_o you_o who_o not_o i_o but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n work_v by_o my_o weakness_n have_v fill_v beyond_o what_o can_v be_v hope_v farewell_o you_o apostle_n fair_a habitation_n master_n of_o my_o labour_n although_o i_o have_v not_o often_o preach_v within_o your_o wall_n this_o passage_n be_v too_o bright_a to_o need_v a_o comment_n and_o those_o who_o can_v discern_v the_o parish-church_n of_o c._n p._n by_o these_o expression_n will_v scarce_o know_v a_o church_n when_o they_o see_v it_o carthage_n be_v know_v to_o have_v have_v a_o great_a number_n of_o church_n about_o the_o time_n of_o 249._o of_o unreason_n of_o separ_fw-la p._n 249._o epiphanius_n for_o we_o have_v several_a of_o their_o name_n in_o the_o title_n of_o 53._o of_o aug._n serm._n 359._o ed._n ben._n praef._n ad_fw-la hilar._n fragm_n p._n 49._o aug._n serm._n 156._o serm._n 26._o vid._n not_o bened._n in_o ser._n 156._o serm._n 53._o st._n augustin_n sermon_n and_o to_o those_o observe_v already_o by_o a_o learned_a hand_n we_o may_v add_v the_o church_n call_v florentia_n which_o nicolaus_n faber_n place_n in_o carthage_n though_o the_o benedictin_n seem_v to_o make_v some_o doubt_n of_o it_o there_o be_v basilica_n gratiani_n and_o theodosiana_n and_o honoriana_n and_o tricillarum_n and_o many_o more_o doubtless_o of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n the_o christian_n of_o antioch_n be_v much_o to_o blame_v if_o they_o have_v not_o many_o parish-church_n before_o epiphanius_n his_o time_n for_o sure_o their_o number_n do_v require_v they_o for_o julian_n the_o apostate_n who_o be_v not_o forward_o to_o magnify_v the_o strength_n of_o the_o christian_n reproach_n they_o for_o be_v in_o a_o manner_n all_o of_o they_o so_o misapogon_n so_o julian_n in_o misapogon_n many_o of_o you_o i_o have_v almost_o say_v all_o the_o senate_n the_o rich_a the_o people_n for_o the_o great_a part_n or_o rather_o all_o together_o have_v choose_v atheism_n that_o be_v christianity_n and_o that_o they_o have_v many_o church_n in_o constantius_n his_o time_n appear_v by_o the_o discourse_n that_o happen_v between_o that_o emperor_n and_o athanasius_n in_o antioch_n the_o emperor_n desire_v of_o that_o bishop_n that_o now_o upon_o his_o restauration_n he_o will_v allow_v one_o of_o those_o many_o church_n he_o have_v in_o alexandria_n to_o such_o as_o be_v of_o the_o arian_n persuasion_n 20._o persuasion_n soz._n l._n 3._o c._n 20._o the_o bishop_n reply_v that_o he_o be_v very_o ready_a to_o comply_v with_o his_o request_n provide_v the_o orthodox_n may_v have_v the_o same_o favour_n in_o antioch_n to_o have_v one_o church_n of_o the_o many_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v there_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o 〈◊〉_d and_o socr._n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euzoius_n the_o arian_n be_v say_v to_o be_v master_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n while_o paulinus_n have_v but_o one_o of_o the_o least_o within_o the_o town_n and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n when_o aphrate_a when_o theodor._n hist_o relig._n in_o aphrate_a meletius_n be_v drive_v out_o it_o be_v say_v that_o all_o the_o clergy_n be_v likewise_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o sacred_a temple_n and_o out_o of_o every_o church_n and_o to_o come_v to_o city_n of_o a_o low_a rank_n 8._o rank_n soz._n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o cyzicus_n have_v many_o church_n in_o epiphanius_n day_n and_o so_o have_v 18._o have_v soz._n l._n 6._o c._n 18._o edessa_n so_o have_v 4._o have_v soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n and_o many_o more_o especial_o such_o great_a city_n as_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o for_o be_v altogether_o christian_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v in_o another_o place_n when_o i_o come_v to_o consider_v the_o evidence_n of_o our_o author_n for_o the_o paucity_n of_o believer_n even_o in_o the_o great_a city_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n i_o hope_v i_o have_v sufficient_o clear_v this_o point_n that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o singularity_n in_o alexandria_n in_o the_o time_n of_o epiphanius_n to_o have_v many_o parish-church_n 17._o parish-church_n prim._n ep._n p._n 17._o the_o last_o testimony_n our_o author_n produce_v on_o this_o head_n be_v from_o 27._o from_o p._n 27._o dr._n stillingfleet_n now_o bishop_n of_o worcester_n sermon_n against_o separation_n although_o when_o the_o church_n increase_v occasional_a meeting_n be_v frequent_a in_o several_a place_n yet_o still_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n and_o one_o altar_n and_o one_o baptistry_n and_o one_o bishop_n with_o many_o presbyter_n assist_v he_o all_o this_o may_v very_o well_o be_v and_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n remain_v primitive_a for_o one_o bishop_n church_n may_v have_v several_a dependent_a congregation_n one_o altar_n may_v consist_v with_o many_o subordinate_a communion_n table_n one_o baptistry_n may_v serve_v the_o great_a city_n and_o one_o bishop_n may_v supervise_v several_a parish_n and_o the_o occasional_a meeting_n speak_v of_o may_v not_o be_v destitute_a of_o the_o privilege_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o i_o must_v remember_v my_o measure_n and_o not_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o explain_v the_o notion_n of_o so_o learned_a a_o person_n who_o may_v have_v many_o thing_n in_o his_o view_n which_o i_o may_v not_o have_v observe_v yet_o i_o can_v but_o take_v notice_n that_o the_o champion_n of_o the_o congregational_a way_n must_v needs_o be_v distress_v when_o they_o betake_v themselves_o to_o that_o sermon_n to_o make_v out_o the_o antiquity_n of_o their_o notion_n where_o it_o be_v explode_v 28._o explode_v p._n 28._o as_o a_o novel_a and_o late_a fancy_n that_o have_v not_o age_n enough_o to_o plead_v prescription_n and_o the_o same_o learned_a 262._o learned_a unreas_n of_o separ_fw-la from_o p._n 228_o to_o p._n 262._o prelate_n have_v make_v it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o even_o in_o africa_n which_o be_v fancy_v to_o come_v near_o to_o the_o congregational_a standard_n several_z bishop_n have_v in_o ancient_a time_n and_o immemorial_o very_o large_a diocese_n in_o conclusion_n our_o author_n come_v to_o sum_n up_o his_o evidence_n and_o to_o assure_v his_o performance_n 17._o performance_n prim._n ep._n p._n 17._o that_o this_o be_v not_o bare_o deliver_v by_o person_n of_o excellent_a learning_n and_o intimate_a acquaintance_n with_o antiquity_n but_o prove_v by_o those_o record_n which_o be_v most_o venerable_a in_o their_o account_n and_o the_o evidence_n reach_v not_o only_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o divers_a age_n after_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v or_o prove_v by_o the_o witness_n produce_v by_o he_o in_o this_o chapter_n have_v be_v fair_o lay_v down_o and_o consider_v and_o i_o desire_v that_o all_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o merit_n and_o pertinence_n of_o the_o evidence_n and_o not_o by_o the_o confidence_n of_o the_o advocate_n chap._n ii_o sect_n ii_o it_o have_v please_v mr._n clerkson_n to_o fancy_n that_o those_o who_o maintain_v diocesan_n episcopacy_n will_v be_v very_o much_o distress_a if_o he_o can_v prove_v that_o of_o old_a several_a bishop_n have_v their_o seat_n in_o village_n and_o therefore_o observe_v 19_o observe_v prim._n ep._n p._n 19_o that_o those_o who_o be_v concern_v to_o extend_v the_o ancient_a bishop_n to_o the_o modern_a pitch_n will_v not_o endure_v to_o hear_v nor_o will_v they_o have_v any_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v usual_a of_o old_a to_o have_v bishop_n in_o village_n and_o that_o
i_o can_v remember_v so_o humble_a as_o this_o but_o critic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v when_o they_o trifle_v and_o therefore_o let_v we_o attend_v 31._o attend_v prim._n ep._n p._n 31._o some_o village_n be_v very_o little_a such_o as_o zonaras_n call_v 〈◊〉_d call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d monaecia_n scatter_v or_o alone_a house_n or_o such_o as_o those_o mention_v in_o the_o constitution_n of_o izaac_n commenus_n which_o have_v but_o twenty_o or_o ten_o chimney_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 17._o chalcedon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can._n 17._o to_o end_v some_o dispute_n that_o happen_v between_o bishop_n about_o the_o bound_n of_o their_o diocese_n order_n that_o such_o country_n parish_n shall_v remain_v to_o he_o in_o who_o possession_n they_o have_v be_v for_o thirty_o year_n now_o because_o the_o canon_n have_v two_o word_n to_o express_v country_n parish_n zonaras_n have_v a_o fancy_n that_o they_o must_v be_v different_a in_o sense_n and_o therefore_o take_v one_o to_o signify_v such_o small_a place_n 〈◊〉_d place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o he_o call_v monaecia_n place_n remote_a from_o the_o bishop_n seat_n and_o place_v in_o the_o outmost_a skirt_n of_o his_o diocese_n and_o have_v few_o inhabitant_n the_o other_o such_o zon._n such_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d zon._n as_o be_v near_a village_n and_o have_v more_o inhabitant_n how_o much_o this_o may_v be_v to_o the_o point_n of_o village_n episcopacy_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_n that_o it_o describe_v a_o large_a diocese_n that_o have_v country_n parish_n remote_a and_o of_o uncertain_a resort_n be_v i_o think_v so_o clear_a that_o it_o will_v be_v unreasonable_a to_o require_v a_o clear_a instance_n however_o these_o place_n be_v so_o small_a that_o our_o author_n himself_o do_v not_o think_v it_o fit_a they_o shall_v have_v bishop_n concern_v the_o dimension_n of_o village_n our_o author_n proceed_v and_o observe_v 31._o observe_v prim._n ep._n p._n 31._o that_o there_o be_v some_o pretty_a big_a as_o those_o of_o the_o phocense_v in_o pausanias_n which_o consist_v of_o fifty_o house_n this_o country_n may_v have_v be_v the_o holy_a land_n of_o the_o independent_o if_o their_o better_a fortune_n have_v not_o restore_v they_o to_o their_o city_n again_o before_o the_o rise_n of_o our_o christian_a light_n there_o may_v have_v be_v as_o much_o resort_n to_o phocis_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o village_n episcopacy_n as_o be_v heretofore_o to_o delphis_n for_o oracle_n but_o as_o the_o case_n stand_v it_o serve_v only_o as_o a_o occasion_n for_o our_o author_n to_o show_v his_o learning_n and_o to_o make_v this_o great_a remark_n that_o village_n consist_v of_o fifty_o house_n be_v pretty_a big_a though_o he_o be_v not_o please_v to_o resolve_v whether_o they_o be_v yet_o big_a enough_o for_o a_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o way_n it_o be_v marvellous_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v 32._o be_v prim._n ep._n p._n 32._o some_o great_a yet_o such_o as_o justinian_n 24._o justinian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nou._n 24._o call_v the_o great_a village_n who_o can_v have_v imagine_v that_o there_o have_v be_v in_o old_a time_n village_n so_o great_a as_o to_o exceed_v fifty_o house_n if_o the_o authority_n of_o justinian_n have_v not_o be_v produce_v poor_a justinian_n after_o have_v build_v so_o many_o city_n be_v thou_o to_o be_v allege_v a_o poor_a witness_n for_o large_a village_n than_o those_o of_o phocis_n no_o italian_a professor_n ever_o cite_v upon_o mean_a occasion_n 33._o occasion_n prim._n ep._n p._n 33._o the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n which_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o bishop_n in_o some_o village_n give_v evidence_n that_o in_o such_o place_n there_o be_v bishop_n this_o be_v the_o only_a synod_n in_o the_o east_n that_o prohibit_v bishop_n to_o be_v make_v in_o village_n and_o indeed_o the_o prohibition_n be_v understand_v of_o lesser_a village_n villulis_fw-la village_n in_o villulis_fw-la that_o there_o be_v bishop_n in_o some_o village_n no_o body_n i_o think_v ever_o deny_v that_o every_o village_n shall_v have_v a_o bishop_n i_o think_v our_o author_n do_v not_o desire_v those_o of_o twenty_o or_o fifty_o house_n may_v be_v excuse_v what_o then_o be_v it_o he_o contend_v for_o be_v it_o that_o every_o village_n of_o more_o than_o fifty_o house_n may_v have_v a_o bishop_n of_o its_o own_o let_v he_o have_v his_o fancy_n i_o will_v not_o oppose_v but_o than_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o this_o may_v be_v do_v or_o whether_o the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n have_v forbid_v it_o but_o whether_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v so_o of_o right_n or_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v there_o in_o egypt_n but_o a_o hundred_o city_n and_o village_n that_o can_v furnish_v a_o decent_a congregation_n when_o their_o bishop_n be_v no_o more_o or_o in_o other_o province_n where_o the_o number_n of_o the_o bishopric_n be_v know_v be_v there_o so_o few_o village_n of_o such_o a_o size_n or_o be_v they_o all_o reduce_v to_o the_o standard_n of_o phocis_n or_o zonaras_n his_o monoecia_n it_o be_v a_o very_a poor_a and_o beg_a way_n of_o reason_v to_o urge_v that_o primitive_a bishop_n ought_v to_o have_v but_o one_o congregation_n because_o some_o village_n be_v not_o under_o the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o laodicea_n and_o in_o truth_n it_o have_v be_v very_o hard_o to_o deny_v all_o village_n the_o privilege_n of_o bishop_n since_o some_o country_n have_v no_o city_n and_o therefore_o if_o those_o country_n have_v any_o they_o must_v be_v in_o village_n but_o they_o be_v nevertheless_o diocesan_n in_o those_o country_n where_o there_o be_v city_n village-bishop_n be_v very_o rare_a and_o unusual_a especial_o in_o the_o first_o century_n but_o after_o the_o arian_n have_v divide_v egppt_v mareote_n become_v a_o episcopal_a seat_n and_o when_o donatus_n have_v distract_v africa_n one_o old_a bishopric_n be_v tear_v into_o three_o or_o four_o not_o in_o compliance_n with_o ancient_a rule_n or_o practice_n for_o it_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v but_o to_o serve_v the_o end_n of_o party_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v time_n for_o synod_n to_o put_v a_o check_n to_o these_o innovation_n and_o irregularity_n and_o to_o secure_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n by_o forbid_v new_a erection_n and_o by_o confine_v turbulent_a and_o enterprize_v man_n within_o the_o bound_n of_o ancient_a use_n our_o author_n do_v 32._o do_v prim._n ep._n p._n 32._o wrong_a to_o zonaras_n when_o he_o quote_v he_o for_o this_o observation_n that_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a there_o shall_v be_v great_a multitude_n but_o 〈◊〉_d but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d small_a parish_n and_o not_o very_o populous_a may_v have_v bishop_n whereas_o this_o author_n use_v those_o expression_n of_o small_a and_o not_o populous_a parish_n where_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o such_o as_o may_v have_v bishop_n but_o of_o those_o that_o be_v remote_a from_o the_o bishop_n seat_n and_o contest_v by_o two_o bishop_n however_o our_o author_n observe_v 32._o observe_v prim._n ep._n p._n 32._o that_o such_o little_a place_n be_v allow_v bishop_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o he_o who_o have_v the_o chief_a seat_n so_o he_o i._n e._n zonaras_n chalced._n zonaras_n zonar_n in_o can._n 17._o chalced._n on_o the_o 61._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o that_o canon_n two_o african_a bishop_n say_v they_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o decree_n forbid_v any_o bishop_n to_o be_v make_v in_o parish_n 〈◊〉_d parish_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v and_o that_o some_o in_o their_o diocese_n have_v be_v make_v bishop_n by_o the_o consent_n of_o their_o predecessor_n be_v not_o content_a with_o the_o parish_n in_o which_o they_o be_v ordain_v but_o invade_v other_o part_n of_o the_o diocese_n out_o of_o which_o their_o bishopric_n be_v take_v whereupon_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o such_o new_a erect_a bishop_n shall_v be_v confine_v to_o that_o people_n for_o which_o they_o be_v ordain_v now_o these_o parish_n zonaras_n call_v gloss_n call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d territoriam_fw-la cyr._n philox._n gloss_n small_a territory_n or_o district_n which_o may_v consist_v not_o of_o one_o small_a village_n but_o of_o several_a for_o both_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o that_o of_o the_o commentator_n may_v bear_v that_o sense_n but_o after_o all_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v that_o in_o africa_n there_o be_v bishop_n of_o small_a territory_n and_o seat_v in_o village_n yet_o the_o same_o evidence_n that_o we_o have_v for_o these_o small_a bishopric_n discover_v they_o to_o be_v new_a and_o take_v out_o of_o large_a diocese_n so_o that_o in_o old_a
his_o province_n do_v it_o the_o reason_n then_o of_o this_o prohibition_n be_v from_o the_o place_n and_o not_o the_o ordainer_n although_o it_o may_v be_v more_o necessary_a to_o apply_v it_o to_o foreigner_n than_o provincial_n who_o will_v take_v great_a care_n to_o preserve_v ancient_a bound_n so_o that_o if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o absolute_a prohibition_n it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o reason_n be_v general_a and_o hold_v alike_o whoever_o may_v be_v the_o ordainer_n but_o 35._o but_o prim._n ep._n p._n 34_o 35._o they_o except_o such_o place_n where_o there_o have_v be_v bishop_n already_o and_o forbid_v it_o to_o none_o for_o the_o future_a but_o such_o for_o which_o one_o presbyter_n be_v sufficient_a and_o so_o there_o be_v room_n enough_o for_o bishop_n in_o large_a and_o populous_a village_n what_o our_o author_n mince_o call_v place_n where_o there_o have_v be_v bishop_n already_o the_o canon_n both_o in_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a edition_n call_v city_n and_o when_o he_o say_v there_o be_v room_n leave_v by_o this_o canon_n for_o bishop_n in_o populous_a village_n he_o know_v the_o contrary_a to_o be_v true_a for_o the_o canon_n civitas_fw-la canon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d si_fw-mi qua_fw-la talis_fw-la aut_fw-la tam_fw-la populosa_fw-la civitas_fw-la mention_n only_o the_o case_n of_o a_o city_n if_o a_o city_n shall_v be_v find_v very_o populous_a and_o worthy_a of_o a_o bishop_n let_v it_o have_v one_o so_o that_o this_o synod_n neither_o leave_v room_n for_o bishop_n in_o any_o village_n nor_o signify_v that_o it_o be_v usual_a before_o this_o to_o have_v bishop_n in_o small_a place_n unless_o such_o place_n be_v city_n what_o our_o author_n have_v in_o his_o margin_n that_o this_o synod_n decree_v that_o where_o there_o be_v twelve_o family_n there_o be_v to_o be_v a_o rector_n be_v a_o mistake_n 331._o mistake_n vid._n crab._n t._n 1._o p._n 331._o for_o in_o this_o synod_n there_o be_v no_o such_o decree_n 35._o decree_n prim._n ep._n p._n 35._o in_o crect_n they_o tell_v we_o more_o than_o once_o that_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o bishop_n yet_o pliny_n and_o ptolemy_n find_v but_o forty_o city_n there_o so_o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o titus_n be_v suffragans_fw-la must_v have_v their_o throne_n in_o country-village_n he_o seem_v to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v on_o all_o hand_n that_o crete_n have_v indeed_o a_o hundred_o bishop_n in_o titus_n time_n on_o the_o contrary_n i_o know_v some_o 4._o some_o thorndike_n prim._n goverm_n c._n 4._o who_o make_v titus_n the_o sole_a bishop_n of_o the_o island_n and_o conceive_v the_o church_n of_o that_o place_n govern_v by_o presbyter_n under_o that_o one_o bishop_n this_o be_v indeed_o contradict_v by_o several_a ancient_a writer_n and_o some_o theodoret._n some_o chrysost_n oecum_fw-la theophil_n theodoret._n say_v express_o that_o the_o apostle_n will_v not_o commit_v so_o great_a a_o island_n to_o one_o man_n eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d eusebius_n h._n e._n l._n 3._o c._n 4_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d seem_v to_o favour_v mr._n thorndike'_v opinion_n and_o make_v titus_n bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o crete_n in_o the_o three_o century_n we_o find_v two_o bishop_n of_o this_o island_n mention_v and_o each_o say_v mei_fw-la say_v ego_fw-la &_o consacerdotes_fw-la mei_fw-la to_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o church_n there_o may_v be_v many_o more_o though_o they_o be_v not_o where_o mention_v but_o in_o leo_n the_o first_o be_v reign_v there_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v no_o more_o than_o eight_o for_o so_o many_o subscribe_v the_o synodical_a epistle_n ant._n epistle_n epistola_fw-la synod_n ad_fw-la leon._n imp._n apud_fw-la car._n a_o s._n paulo_n not._n ant._n of_o that_o island_n in_o a_o old_a notitia_fw-la of_o the_o patriarchat_n of_o c._n p._n crete_n have_v one_o and_o twenty_o bishop_n and_o in_o hierocles_n his_o civil_a notitia_fw-la this_o island_n have_v twenty_o three_o in_o the_o notitia_fw-la of_o nilus_n doxopatrius_fw-la sacra_fw-la doxopatrius_fw-la leo_fw-la allat_n de_fw-fr consens_fw-la ecc._n orient_a etc._n etc._n l._n 1._o c._n 24._o simon_n hist_o crit._n de_fw-fr levant_n &_o moine_n adu._n sacra_fw-la crete_n have_v ten_o bishop_n this_o island_n according_a to_o pliny_n l._n 4._o c._n 12._o be_v 270_o mile_n in_o length_n and_o fifty_o in_o breadth_n and_o therefore_o the_o diocese_n one_o with_o another_o must_v be_v competent_a when_o the_o bishop_n be_v most_o numerous_a and_o very_o large_a in_o old_a time_n when_o they_o be_v but_o few_o we_o be_v at_o last_o come_v to_o italy_n and_o one_o will_v scarce_o imagine_v that_o any_o thing_n very_o primitive_a shall_v be_v find_v there_o and_o especial_o in_o the_o pope_n own_o province_n here_o our_o author_n observe_v 36._o observe_v prim._n ep_v p._n 36._o that_o every_o petit_fw-fr town_n have_v a_o bishop_n and_o he_o can_v discover_v that_o there_o be_v more_o bishop_n now_o than_o of_o old_a nay_o in_o that_o call_v in_o special_a the_o roman_a province_n there_o be_v now_o few_o by_o many_o than_o ancient_o as_o miraeus_n tell_v we_o be_v evident_a by_o compare_v the_o old_a provincial_a code_n with_o the_o new_a l._n 4._o p._n 160._o this_o roman_a province_n of_o which_o our_o author_n have_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o speak_v without_o understand_v the_o matter_n consist_v now_o of_o such_o church_n as_o be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n immediate_a jurisdiction_n a_o great_a part_n of_o which_o be_v in_o the_o country_n that_o lie_v next_o to_o rome_n but_o many_o be_v remote_a and_o situate_v in_o other_o province_n now_o these_o church_n our_o author_n observe_v be_v now_o few_o than_o ancient_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o those_o under_o the_o peculiar_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n it_o be_v a_o mistake_n for_o they_o be_v now_o more_o numerous_a than_o heretofore_o but_o if_o he_o mean_v only_o those_o bishopric_n that_o lie_v near_o rome_n in_o the_o next_o adjoin_v province_n of_o those_o there_o be_v few_o indeed_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n than_o do_v former_o not_o because_o the_o bishopric_n be_v sink_v but_o many_o of_o they_o be_v make_v archbishopric_n and_o other_o throw_v under_o another_o jurisdiction_n florence_n which_o be_v in_o the_o old_a roman_a province_n be_v make_v 1421._o make_v anno._n 1421._o a_o archepiscopal_a see_v by_o martin_n the_o five_o and_o have_v four_o suburbicary_n bishopric_n give_v to_o it_o for_o suffragans_fw-la beside_o as_o many_o more_o of_o new_a erection_n sienna_n belong_v to_o rome_n ancient_o be_v make_v 1459._o make_v anno_fw-la 1459._o a_o archbishopric_n by_o pius_n ii_o and_o have_v grosseto_o and_o soano_n for_o two_o of_o its_o suffragans_fw-la which_o also_o belong_v to_o the_o roman_a province_n urbin_n be_v make_v 1459._o make_v anno_fw-la 1459._o a_o archbishopric_n but_o in_o the_o last_o century_n by_o paul_n the_o three_o and_o have_v six_o bishopric_n out_o of_o the_o roman_a province_n annex_v to_o it_o fermo_n be_v make_v a_o archbishopric_n by_o sixtus_n the_o five_o and_o have_v five_o suffragans_fw-la give_v it_o all_o of_o new_a erection_n so_o that_o in_o the_o two_o age_n next_o precede_v this_o within_o the_o roman_a province_n there_o be_v ten_o new_a bishopric_n make_v and_o fifteen_o take_v from_o the_o immediate_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o subject_v to_o new_a archbishopric_n so_o that_o the_o bishopric_n remain_v though_o they_o be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o province_n there_o be_v indeed_o about_o five_o old_a bishopric_n unite_v to_o other_o in_o the_o roman_a province_n since_o the_o write_n of_o the_o old_a provincial_n but_o we_o have_v see_v ten_o new_a raise_v to_o make_v amends_o and_o there_o be_v more_o yet_o unaccount_v for_o if_o there_o be_v occasion_n but_o after_o all_o it_o signify_v little_a to_o the_o present_a question_n whether_o the_o roman_a province_n at_o this_o time_n have_v few_o bishop_n than_o it_o have_v when_o that_o old_a provincial_n be_v make_v for_o that_o which_o our_o author_n call_v old_a be_v indeed_o but_o new_a in_o respect_n of_o ecclesiastical_a antiquity_n baronius_n place_n it_o in_o the_o eleven_o century_n and_o that_o be_v 4._o be_v ughell_n ital._n sacr._n &_o miraei_n not._n l_o 4._o at_o least_o a_o age_n too_o high_a for_o there_o be_v several_a bishopric_n even_o in_o the_o old_a copy_n of_o it_o that_o be_v not_o raise_v till_o the_o twelve_o century_n viterbo_n be_v not_o make_v a_o episcopal_a seat_n till_o the_o latter_a end_n 1191._o end_n anno_fw-la 1189_o or_o 1191._o of_o that_o age_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v in_o all_o the_o copy_n of_o that_o provincial_n and_o italy_n afford_v many_o instance_n of_o bishopric_n raise_v in_o that_o age_n which_o be_v all_o to_o be_v find_v there_o in_o england_n it_o have_v ely_n and_o carlisle_n both_o make_v 1133._o make_v anno_fw-la 1109_o &_o 1133._o
then_o but_o few_o bishop_n because_o christianity_n be_v not_o much_o advance_v and_o their_o church_n be_v but_o few_o but_o the_o contrary_n be_v affirm_v of_o this_o very_a time_n by_o writer_n who_o live_v then_o and_o cyprian_a do_v express_o say_v 55._o say_v jampridem_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la provincias_fw-la &_o per_fw-la urbes_fw-la singulas_fw-la ordinati_fw-la sunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la cypr._n ep._n 55._o that_o bishop_n have_v long_o before_o this_o be_v settle_v in_o all_o the_o province_n and_o in_o every_o city_n and_o how_o extraordinary_a this_o synod_n must_v be_v esteem_v at_o that_o time_n may_v be_v observe_v from_o another_o passage_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n where_o it_o be_v remark_v as_o no_o inconsiderable_a thing_n that_o sixteen_o or_o seventeen_o bishop_n be_v present_a at_o the_o consecration_n of_o cornelius_n a_o poor_a business_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o if_o the_o roman_a province_n have_v then_o be_v so_o well_o stock_v with_o bishop_n as_o it_o be_v now_o and_o now_o we_o be_v take_v our_o leave_n of_o italy_n let_v we_o look_v back_o and_o from_o what_o have_v be_v observe_v make_v this_o general_a conclusion_n that_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n have_v be_v increase_v there_o in_o every_o age_n ever_o since_o the_o primitive_a time_n except_v time_n of_o extraordinary_a desolation_n and_o what_o vghellus_fw-la observe_v of_o clusium_n and_o some_o other_o bishopric_n be_v true_a of_o most_o of_o they_o that_o from_o one_o large_a diocese_n it_o be_v crumble_v into_o many_o small_a one_o this_o city_n say_v he_o 3._o he_o vghel_n ital._n sal._n t._n 3._o in_o old_a time_n be_v possess_v of_o a_o very_a large_a diocese_n which_o the_o pope_n by_o degree_n have_v dissipate_v and_o convey_v to_o other_o cathedral_n which_o they_o erect_v nay_o some_o after_o the_o lop_n off_o of_o several_a branch_n still_o remain_v considerable_a as_o the_o same_o author_n observe_v 1._o observe_v vghel_n ital._n 5._o t._n 1._o of_o asculum_n the_o diocese_n that_o now_o remain_v though_o much_o diminish_v by_o the_o erection_n of_o new_a cathedral_n be_v not_o very_o small_a for_o after_o all_o this_o it_o have_v retain_v 156_o parish_n church_n from_o italy_n we_o be_v return_v home_o by_o the_o way_n of_o spain_n where_o notwithstanding_o the_o inquisition_n and_o great_a bishop_n who_o have_v very_o large_a diocese_n and_o take_v themselves_o under_o those_o circumstance_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o their_o predecessor_n do_v at_o trent_n our_o author_n venture_v to_o prosecute_v his_o design_n and_o make_v enquiry_n after_o village-bishop_n 37._o village-bishop_n prim._n ep._n p._n 37._o in_o spain_n the_o twelve_o council_n of_o toledo_n 681._o toledo_n anno_fw-la 681._o take_v notice_n of_o one_o make_v a_o bishop_n in_o monasterio_n villulae_fw-la and_o another_o in_o suburbio_fw-la toletano_n etc._n etc._n and_o of_o other_o in_o aliis_fw-la vicis_fw-la &_o villulis_fw-la it_o be_v true_a he_o add_v that_o the_o bishop_n there_o allow_v it_o not_o but_o order_n it_o otherwise_o for_o the_o future_a but_o for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o reader_n it_o may_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o add_v the_o reason_n of_o that_o synod_n against_o this_o matter_n 1._o pertractanda_fw-la 1._o res_fw-la nobis_fw-la novellae_fw-la praesumptionis_fw-la usurpatione_fw-la seize_v intulit_fw-la pertractanda_fw-la that_o it_o be_v a_o innovation_n or_o a_o novel_a presumption_n 2._o it_o be_v against_o the_o receive_a law_n of_o the_o church_n and_o canonical_a constitution_n canonica_n constitutio_fw-la id_fw-la fieri_fw-la omnimoda_fw-la ratione_fw-la refellit_fw-la 3._o that_o it_o be_v against_o scripture_n and_o the_o order_n of_o st._n paul_n to_o titus_n to_o make_v bishop_n in_o city_n and_o then_o cite_v several_a canon_n 1._o canon_n oportet_fw-la in_o nullo_n monasterio_n quemlibet_fw-la episcopum_fw-la cathedram_fw-la collocare_fw-la conc._n carth._n frag._n apd_v mabillon_n anal._n p._n 1._o of_o council_n against_o it_o as_o that_o of_o sardica_n and_o two_o african_a canon_n and_o concilium_fw-la tauritanum_n title_n the_o second_o and_o in_o conclusion_n they_o null_a such_o ordination_n but_o what_o sort_n of_o bishopric_n they_o have_v ancient_o in_o spain_n shall_v appear_v in_o due_a place_n to_o bring_v episcopacy_n yet_o one_o step_n low_o our_o author_n 38._o author_n prim._n ep._n p._n 38._o find_v bishop_n not_o only_o in_o village_n but_o in_o monastery_n general_o less_o than_o village_n and_o this_o he_o think_v will_v be_v a_o proof_n of_o the_o question_n in_o hand_n what_o will_v these_o bishop_n of_o monastery_n be_v proof_n of_o the_o primitive_a way_n and_o be_v monastery_n of_o such_o primitive_a foundation_n there_o can_v be_v sure_o no_o bishop_n in_o the_o monastery_n before_o there_o be_v such_o place_n and_o we_o read_v not_o of_o any_o such_o till_o the_o four_o century_n and_o of_o no_o bishop_n in_o they_o till_o afterward_o and_o those_o too_o as_o rare_a and_o extraordinary_a in_o ancient_a time_n as_o simplicity_n in_o court_n or_o sincerity_n and_o candour_n among_o dissenter_n but_o let_v we_o consider_v what_o he_o bring_v 38._o bring_v prim._n ep._n p._n 38._o barse_n and_o eulogius_n have_v val._n have_v soz._n l._n 6._o c._n 34_o 32._o ed._n val._n a_o monastery_n for_o their_o diocese_n no_o city_n nor_o territory_n and_o one_o lazarus_n also_o if_o our_o author_n have_v transcribe_v but_o two_o word_n more_o out_o of_o sozomen_n he_o have_v spoil_v all_o his_o his_o argument_n but_o because_o nothing_o go_v more_o against_o the_o conscience_n of_o a_o dissent_a than_o ingenuity_n out_o of_o tenderness_n to_o that_o infirmity_n i_o will_v supply_v the_o omission_n sozomen_n do_v indeed_o say_v 〈◊〉_d say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o these_o be_v not_o make_v bishop_n of_o any_o city_n but_o only_o for_o honour_n sake_n and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o way_n of_o recompense_n for_o what_o they_o have_v do_v these_o than_o be_v titular_a or_o honorary_a bishop_n according_a to_o this_o historian_n and_o therefore_o of_o little_a use_n to_o prove_v what_o be_v the_o measure_n of_o primitive_a diocese_n to_o these_o our_o author_n say_v we_o may_v add_v those_o monastic_o which_o epiphanius_n 1095._o epiphanius_n epiph._n expos_n fid._n p._n 1095._o speak_v of_o one_o of_o they_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o desert_n of_o egypt_n the_o other_o in_o mount_n sinai_n who_o have_v receive_v episcopal_a consecration_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o do_v episcopal_a act_n and_o to_o sit_v as_o bishop_n he_o may_v if_o he_o have_v please_v have_v take_v some_o notice_n that_o this_o read_n be_v not_o only_o suspect_v but_o plain_o faulty_a and_o petavius_n have_v note_v in_o the_o margin_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v read_v with_o a_o negative_a that_o these_o monk_n have_v not_o receive_v ordination_n as_o bishop_n do_v yet_o presume_v to_o act_v as_o such_o this_o be_v plain_a from_o what_o go_v before_o for_o epiphanius_n show_v the_o extravagance_n of_o some_o monk_n and_o man_n of_o severe_a life_n say_v 〈◊〉_d say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o one_o zacchaeus_n be_v a_o layman_n presume_v to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n and_o then_o follow_v the_o two_o abovementioned_a who_o take_v upon_o they_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n without_o be_v ordain_v for_o what_o extravagance_n or_o fault_n can_v it_o appear_v for_o person_n who_o have_v be_v consecrate_a bishop_n to_o administer_v the_o office_n commit_v to_o they_o but_o they_o be_v here_o censure_v 〈◊〉_d censure_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o man_n who_o presume_v rash_o and_o insolent_o to_o act_v as_o bishop_n from_o i_o know_v not_o what_o dream_n and_o as_o the_o sense_n must_v be_v without_o ordination_n i_o wonder_v our_o author_n shall_v think_v fit_a to_o dissemble_v this_o since_o it_o be_v more_o for_o the_o service_n of_o his_o party_n than_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v produce_v to_o have_v some_o ancient_a instance_n to_o countenance_v the_o practice_n of_o assume_v the_o pastoral_a office_n without_o ordination_n the_o next_o instance_n 38._o instance_n p._n 38._o of_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o monastery_n be_v from_o the_o subscription_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n where_o we_o have_v helpidius_n bishop_n thermensis_n monasterij_fw-la we_o own_o this_o monastery_n to_o be_v a_o mistake_n not_o of_o our_o author_n indeed_o but_o of_o the_o old_a translator_n of_o those_o subscription_n who_o find_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o greek_a subscription_n render_v it_o monastery_n whereas_o it_o signify_v a_o mansion_n or_o a_o stage-town_n in_o the_o public_a course_n or_o post-road_n as_o we_o now_o speak_v in_o some_o manuscript_n we_o have_v both_o word_n mansio_fw-la and_o monasterium_fw-la some_o have_n mansio_fw-la only_o as_o that_o of_o paris_n and_o dijon_n which_o baluzius_n 1031._o baluzius_n baluz_fw-fr nou._n coll._n conc._n p._n 1031._o mention_n and_o berterius_n pithan_n berterius_n mansio_fw-la thermensis_n berter_n pithan_n
be_v in_o spain_n 71_o bishop_n and_z 7_o metropolitan_n in_o a_o controversy_n between_o the_o archbishop_n of_o toledo_n and_o valentia_n it_o be_v say_v that_o constantine_n have_v divide_v the_o country_n into_o province_n and_o diocese_n much_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n with_o what_o have_v be_v already_o produce_v with_o this_o agree_v the_o observation_n of_o luitprandus_fw-la which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o same_o book_n for_o speak_v of_o the_o 13_o council_n of_o toledo_n he_o say_v the_o number_n of_o the_o bishop_n there_o be_v 76_o of_o who_o 27_o subscribe_v by_o proxy_n and_o in_o his_o chronicon_fw-la he_o give_v notice_n of_o several_a new_a bishopric_n erect_v in_o spain_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o seven_o century_n the_o diocese_n of_o spain_n must_v be_v very_o large_a then_o when_o so_o great_a a_o country_n be_v divide_v between_o 70_o or_o 80_o bishop_n and_o especial_o consider_v the_o province_n of_o narbon_n be_v then_o reckon_v to_o spain_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o illiberis_n spain_n seem_v to_o have_v but_o few_o bishop_n for_o though_o we_o find_v by_o the_o subscription_n that_o the_o bishop_n have_v meet_v there_o from_o all_o the_o province_n of_o spain_n yet_o be_v there_o in_o all_o but_o 19_o and_o long_o before_o this_o 254._o this_o anno._n 254._o in_o st._n cyprian_n time_n two_o city_n in_o spain_n seem_v to_o belong_v to_o one_o bishop_n as_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o the_o inscription_n of_o st._n cyprian_n 67._o cyprian_n ep._n 67._o epistle_n foelici_fw-la presbytero_fw-la &_o plebibus_fw-la consistentibus_fw-la ad_fw-la legionem_fw-la &_o asturicae_n upon_o which_o vasaeus_n 256._o vasaeus_n vasaeus_n in_o chron._n hisp_n anno._n 256._o have_v this_o remark_n colligi_fw-la videtur_fw-la legionenses_n atque_fw-la asturicenses_fw-la eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la eidem_fw-la episcopo_fw-la fuisse_fw-la subjectos_fw-la licet_fw-la postea_fw-la divisi_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la fuerint_fw-la our_o author_n 40._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 40._o cite_v rabanus_n maurus_n to_o very_o little_a purpose_n when_o he_o make_v he_o to_o say_v that_o there_o be_v few_o bishop_n at_o first_o but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n they_o be_v ordain_v not_o only_o in_o city_n but_o in_o place_n where_o there_o be_v no_o need_n which_o then_o be_v the_o most_o primitive_a way_n the_o first_o or_o that_o which_o come_v after_o after_o a_o tedious_a peregrination_n our_o author_n illib_n author_n anno._n 305._o conc._n illib_n 40._o illib_n prim._n ep_v p._n 40._o be_v very_o kind_a to_o let_v we_o come_v near_a home_n i_o need_v not_o tell_v you_o how_o few_o city_n there_o be_v in_o ireland_n yet_o primate_n usher_n tell_v we_o out_o of_o nennius_n that_o st._n patrick_n found_v there_o 365_o church_n and_o as_o many_o bishop_n i_o hope_v no_o reasonable_a man_n will_v blame_v i_o as_o too_o difficult_a of_o belief_n if_o i_o refuse_v this_o fable_n for_o evidence_n the_o authority_n of_o nennius_n may_v be_v question_v without_o imputation_n of_o scepticism_n and_o can_v never_o pass_v as_o long_o as_o man_n have_v judgement_n enough_o to_o distinguish_v between_o history_n and_o legend_n but_o i_o take_v nennius_n his_o way_n of_o write_v to_o be_v a_o degree_n even_o below_o legend_n but_o since_o this_o fabulous_a calendar_n of_o irish_a bishop_n have_v pass_v without_o contradiction_n not_o that_o any_o body_n ever_o believe_v it_o but_o because_o it_o be_v too_o gross_a to_o be_v refute_v and_o since_o it_o have_v be_v and_o be_v still_o urge_v for_o history_n in_o the_o behalf_n of_o primitive_a episcopacy_n i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o trace_v it_o to_o its_o original_a and_o when_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o story_n be_v understand_v it_o will_v do_v the_o congregational_a way_n but_o very_o slender_a service_n archbishop_n usher_v ed._n usher_v antiquit._fw-la eccl._n brit._n p._n 473._o ult_n ed._n publish_v a_o catalogue_n of_o old_a irish_a saint_n which_o be_v divide_v into_o three_o rank_n which_o be_v distinguish_v one_o from_o another_o as_o well_o by_o time_n as_o by_o merit_n the_o first_o be_v the_o best_a they_o consist_v all_o of_o bishop_n and_o their_o number_n be_v 350_o they_o be_v founder_n of_o church_n etc._n etc._n this_o order_n of_o saint_n last_v for_o four_o reign_n the_o last_o of_o which_o be_v tuathail_n but_o they_o be_v not_o all_o irish_a but_o roman_n and_o frank_n and_o britan_n now_o according_a to_o arch_a bishop_n usher_v ult_n usher_v antiquit._fw-la p._n 490._o ed._n ult_n chronology_n of_o those_o reign_v there_o be_v above_o a_o hundred_o year_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o st._n patrick_n apostleship_n to_o the_o end_n of_o tuathail_n only_o there_o be_v one_o king_n before_o he_o in_o that_o chronological_a table_n which_o the_o old_a catalogue_n do_v not_o mention_v that_o these_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o st._n patrick_n ordination_n we_o may_v find_v in_o jocelin_n 492._o jocelin_n usher_n antiq._n p._n 492._o who_o say_v that_o st._n patrick_n ordain_v just_o so_o many_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o found_v 700_o church_n to_o complete_a the_o irish_a calendar_n nennius_n increase_v their_o number_n to_o 365_o a_o singular_a compliment_n to_o a_o lazy_a nation_n to_o make_v it_o holiday_n for_o they_o all_o the_o year_n round_o now_o whether_o all_o these_o live_v in_o ireland_n or_o be_v all_o ordain_v by_o patrick_n the_o catalogue_n do_v not_o say_v but_o it_o say_v express_o that_o they_o be_v of_o several_a other_o nation_n beside_o irish_a so_o that_o this_o may_v rather_o represent_v the_o communion_n of_o patrick_n and_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n in_o britain_n and_o france_n that_o keep_v easter_n on_o the_o fourteen_o of_o the_o moon_n than_o his_o suffragans_fw-la of_o ireland_n and_o the_o fewness_n of_o bishop_n in_o succeed_a time_n and_o under_o the_o second_o order_n seem_v to_o represent_v a_o great_a change_n not_o in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o be_v in_o the_o bottom_n of_o that_o catalogue_n but_o in_o the_o observance_n which_o be_v there_o mention_v for_o whether_o the_o frank_n by_o this_o time_n have_v take_v another_o way_n and_o the_o british_a church_n be_v under_o great_a calamity_n or_o augustin_n the_o monk_n have_v introduce_v the_o roman_a custom_n there_o be_v but_o few_o bishop_n in_o the_o second_o order_n but_o suppose_v these_o holy_a bishop_n have_v be_v all_o of_o ireland_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o so_o many_o cathedral_n for_o they_o for_o they_o last_v four_o reign_n which_o make_v up_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o though_o all_o the_o bishop_n seat_n in_o ireland_n have_v not_o be_v above_o fifty_o they_o may_v easy_o have_v afford_v 350_o saint_n in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o hundred_o year_n but_o because_o there_o be_v but_o sixty_o year_n allow_v for_o st._n patrick_n government_n in_o ireland_n even_o in_o that_o and_o the_o survive_a generation_n this_o number_n of_o bishop_n may_v easy_o rise_v from_o fifty_o i_o mention_v this_o number_n because_o sometime_o ireland_n have_v have_v so_o many_o diocese_n or_o more_o as_o we_o may_v see_v in_o a_o copy_n of_o the_o provincial_n publish_v by_o sacr._n by_o geogr._n sacr._n s._n paulo_n which_o have_v more_o seat_n in_o it_o than_o that_o of_o which_o cambden_n speak_v after_o all_o i_o be_o not_o well_o satisfy_v but_o all_o st._n patrick_n bishop_n may_v be_v a_o fable_n and_o he_o himself_o only_o a_o saint_n of_o imagination_n for_o who_o can_v tell_v but_o patricius_n arvernensis_n may_v have_v sink_v a_o day_n low_a in_o the_o calendar_n and_o make_v the_o irish_a a_o patricius_n hibernensis_n or_o the_o spanish_a patrick_n advers._fw-la patrick_n luitpr_fw-la advers._fw-la of_o malaga_n who_o according_a to_o luitprandus_fw-la lay_v claim_v to_o that_o day_n may_v appear_v to_o the_o irish_a in_o a_o dream_n as_o st._n george_n do_v to_o our_o countryman_n and_o become_v their_o protector_n and_o at_o last_o their_o apostle_n for_o the_o calendar_n be_v the_o ground_n upon_o which_o the_o legendary_n run_v division_n and_o as_o barren_a as_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v it_o have_v produce_v a_o world_n of_o devout_a fable_n for_o in_o old_a time_n give_v a_o monk_n but_o a_o name_n and_o he_o will_v quick_o write_v a_o life_n our_o author_n take_v s._n patrick_n 40._o patrick_n prim._n ep._n p._n 40._o 365_o fabulous_a bishopric_n for_o effective_a be_v not_o content_a but_o will_v increase_v their_o number_n about_o the_o twelve_o century_n afterward_o say_v he_o the_o number_n of_o bishop_n increase_v in_o ireland_n so_o that_o when_o malachias_n go_v into_o ireland_n near_o 600_o year_n after_o s._n patrick_n anno_fw-la 1150._o malach._n 1150._o bern._n vit_fw-mi malach._n vnus_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la non_fw-la esset_fw-la contentus_fw-la uno_fw-la episcopo_fw-la sed_fw-la singulae_fw-la paene_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la singulos_fw-la haberent_fw-la
but_o 500_o or_o as_o he_o reckon_v 900_o diocese_n in_o africa_n there_o be_v no_o more_o town_n or_o village_n in_o the_o whole_a country_n he_o be_v please_v to_o add_v that_o he_o never_o yet_o can_v see_v any_o proof_n any_o instance_n of_o a_o small_a village_n that_o have_v so_o extend_v a_o territory_n under_o one_o bishop_n but_o do_v he_o ever_o see_v a_o instance_n of_o a_o bishop_n who_o have_v no_o diocese_n but_o the_o single_a village_n in_o which_o he_o reside_v or_o have_v he_o ever_o see_v the_o limit_n of_o such_o a_o bishopric_n describe_v if_o he_o have_v why_o do_v he_o not_o produce_v it_o for_o one_o such_o instance_n have_v be_v worth_a his_o whole_a chapter_n about_o village_n bishop_n if_o he_o have_v not_o why_o do_v he_o use_v so_o much_o confidence_n when_o he_o be_v whole_o in_o the_o dark_a there_o be_v but_o very_o few_o ancient_a diocese_n that_o be_v deliver_v down_o to_o we_o with_o a_o account_n of_o their_o circuit_n but_o we_o happen_v to_o know_v the_o number_n that_o be_v of_o old_a in_o several_a country_n and_o from_o thence_o can_v infer_v in_o general_a of_o the_o greatness_n and_o smallness_n of_o the_o bishopric_n and_o to_o give_v our_o author_n one_o instance_n more_o in_o a_o country_n he_o quote_v for_o village-bishop_n in_o cyprus_n in_o sozomen_n time_n it_o be_v usual_a to_o have_v bishop_n in_o village_n and_o yet_o in_o all_o that_o island_n at_o that_o very_a time_n there_o be_v but_o nine_o bishop_n under_o one_o metropolitan_a as_o appear_v from_o the_o subscription_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n 15._o chalcedon_n conc._n chalc._n act._n 6_o &_o 15._o for_o in_o the_o copy_n of_o subscription_n publish_v by_o labbe_n from_o the_o paper_n of_o sirmond_n there_o be_v six_o subscriber_n from_o that_o island_n and_o again_o the_o metropolitan_a subscribe_v with_o several_a other_o for_o his_o suffragans_fw-la that_o be_v absent_a have_v but_o three_o remain_v to_o subscribe_v for_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o either_o the_o village-bishop_n have_v a_o considerable_a territory_n or_o the_o city_n bishopric_n be_v enormous_o great_a at_o last_o this_o chapter_n concern_v village-bishop_n be_v bring_v to_o a_o conclusion_n and_o upon_o the_o whole_a matter_n i_o conceive_v two_o point_n to_o be_v very_o clear_a 1._o that_o although_o there_o be_v some_o bishop_n seat_v in_o village_n yet_o it_o do_v by_o no_o mean_n follow_v that_o they_o be_v but_o pastor_n to_o a_o single_a congregation_n 2._o that_o a_o great_a number_n of_o place_n which_o our_o author_n take_v to_o be_v village_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v city_n before_o he_o can_v find_v any_o bishop_n to_o be_v seat_v there_o so_o that_o either_o the_o skill_n and_o the_o diligence_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n be_v not_o so_o great_a as_o his_o friend_n give_v out_o who_o in_o these_o matter_n be_v very_o implicit_a believer_n or_o else_o we_o must_v complain_v of_o want_n of_o ingenuity_n and_o fair_a deal_n a_o fault_n which_o the_o saint_n be_v very_o easy_a to_o forgive_v when_o it_o be_v commit_v in_o pure_a zeal_n to_o their_o cause_n but_o we_o church_n of_o england_n man_n take_v for_o one_o of_o the_o black_a sin_n chap._n iii_o after_o a_o tedious_a journey_n through_o village_n and_o obscure_a place_n we_o be_v at_o last_o come_v to_o city_n and_o may_v hope_v now_o for_o a_o noble_a subjuct_n of_o our_o enquiry_n and_o observation_n but_o to_o our_o great_a disappointment_n and_o mortification_n we_o be_v inform_v by_o our_o author_n 45._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 45._o that_o far_o the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o viz._n those_o that_o be_v very_o little_a and_o those_o that_o be_v not_o great_a be_v for_o their_o largeness_n but_o like_o our_o village_n or_o market_n to_n they_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v who_o have_v hitherto_o admire_v the_o magnificence_n of_o greek_a and_o roman_a city_n and_o pretend_v to_o judge_v of_o their_o former_a greatness_n by_o the_o ruin_n that_o remain_v as_o we_o discover_v the_o stature_n of_o giant_n by_o some_o of_o their_o bone_n whereas_o these_o celebrate_a city_n be_v far_o the_o most_o of_o they_o as_o we_o be_v now_o tell_v not_o superior_a to_o putney_n or_o batersey_n or_o to_o say_v the_o utmost_a to_o kingston_n or_o colebrook_n but_o to_o make_v out_o this_o paradox_n our_o author_n 46._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 46._o enter_v into_o a_o critical_a dispute_n concern_v the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n word_n for_o city_n and_o show_v that_o some_o have_v bestow_v the_o title_n of_o city_n upon_o those_o place_n that_o other_o call_v village_n city_n say_v he_o be_v not_o only_a city_n but_o town_n because_o according_a to_o one_o evangelist_n 〈◊〉_d evangelist_n luk._n 10.8_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d our_o saviour_n say_v whatsoever_o city_n you_o enter_v according_a to_o another_o 〈◊〉_d another_o math._n 10.11_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d whatsoever_o city_n or_o village_n and_o again_o in_o one_o place_n 9.35_o place_n luk._n 4.43_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d math._n 9.35_o he_o tell_v the_o capernaite_n he_o must_v preach_v in_o other_o city_n in_o another_o place_n 〈◊〉_d place_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o upon_o another_o occasion_n our_o saviour_n be_v say_v to_o go_v about_o all_o city_n and_o village_n preach_v and_o in_o another_o place_n 〈◊〉_d place_n mark_v 1.38_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d join_v both_o the_o word_n in_o one_o let_v we_o go_v into_o the_o chief_a village_n but_o these_o instance_n be_v so_o far_o from_o prove_v that_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o village_n that_o some_o of_o they_o do_v plain_o show_v the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o they_o distinguish_v between_o city_n and_o village_n and_o the_o other_o where_o city_n be_v only_o mention_v and_o village_n imply_v they_o be_v there_o to_o be_v understand_v not_o from_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o word_n but_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n for_o instance_n suppose_v one_o be_v order_v to_o preach_v to_o all_o the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o this_o order_n shall_v preach_v to_o the_o stranger_n and_o servant_n there_o shall_v therefore_o a_o citizen_n signify_v a_o stranger_n or_o a_o slave_n yet_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n these_o may_v be_v understand_v to_o be_v include_v though_o not_o from_o the_o signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o though_o another_o relation_n of_o this_o order_n shall_v add_v the_o particular_n omit_v yet_o the_o former_a word_n citizen_n will_v not_o have_v a_o double_a sense_n if_o one_o shall_v say_v he_o have_v view_v a_o certain_a house_n and_o at_o another_o time_n speak_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n shall_v say_v he_o have_v view_v the_o house_n and_o garden_n do_v therefore_o a_o house_n signify_v a_o garden_n the_o less_o principal_a part_n be_v often_o omit_v in_o ordinary_a discourse_n though_o when_o man_n speak_v with_o more_o exactness_n they_o be_v enumerate_v our_o saviour_n and_o his_o disciple_n may_v have_v enter_v some_o time_n into_o solitary_a and_o alone_a house_n as_o well_o as_o into_o village_n and_o if_o one_o of_o the_o evangelist_n have_v happen_v to_o have_v add_v this_o must_v therefore_o a_o village_n or_o a_o city_n signify_v a_o simple_a house_n 46._o house_n prim._n ep_v p._n 46._o bethlem_n be_v luke_n 2.38_o the_o city_n of_o david_n but_o no_o other_o than_o a_o village_n john_n 7.24_o which_o epiphanius_n 51._o epiphanius_n epiph._n haer._n 51._o take_v notice_n of_o and_o give_v this_o reason_n for_o it_o that_o it_o be_v reduce_v to_o small_a compass_n and_o have_v very_o few_o inhabitant_n and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o direct_o against_o our_o author_n purpose_n than_o this_o reason_n for_o it_o be_v call_v a_o city_n with_o respect_n to_o its_o ancient_a greatness_n and_o a_o village_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o present_a mean_a condition_n as_o the_o same_o man_n by_o a_o usual_a civility_n be_v style_v by_o a_o office_n he_o once_o bear_v though_o he_o be_v reduce_v to_o a_o mean_a place_n yet_o the_o one_o title_n do_v by_o no_o mean_n signify_v or_o imply_v the_o other_o but_o this_o instance_n of_o bethlem_n will_v prove_v yet_o more_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o cause_n of_o congregational_a episcopacy_n upon_o another_o account_n for_o the_o design_n of_o our_o author_n in_o disparage_a city_n by_o make_v the_o title_n common_a to_o village_n be_v to_o show_v what_o mean_a place_n those_o be_v that_o make_v up_o the_o diocese_n of_o ancient_a bishop_n whereas_o this_o instance_n overthrow_v that_o vain_a imagination_n and_o prove_v the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o this_o place_n which_o be_v call_v city_n have_v never_o any_o bishop_n of_o its_o own_o for_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n but_o be_v part_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o
near_o adjoin_v make_v but_o one_o church_n now_o because_o church_n of_o so_o large_a extent_n require_v many_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n and_o yet_o of_o one_o church_n there_o must_v be_v but_o one_o pastor_n the_o apostle_n in_o settle_v the_o state_n of_o these_o church_n do_v so_o constitute_v in_o they_o many_o presbyter_n now_o according_a to_o dr._n field_n every_o episcopal_a church_n as_o lay_v out_o by_o the_o apostle_n have_v so_o large_a extent_n as_o to_o require_v many_o minister_n and_o yet_o but_o one_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n be_v plain_o not_o asleep_o congregational_a church_n but_o diocesan_n bishop_n bilson_n 321._o bilson_n bill_n perpet_n gou._n c._n 14._o p._n 295_o 298_o 306_o 321._o be_v yet_o plain_o against_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o he_o be_v allege_v we_o have_v say_v that_o learned_a prelate_n one_o bishop_n in_o a_o church_n tie_v to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o church_n and_o the_o prince_n you_o will_v have_v 300_o in_o a_o diocese_n and_o some_o more_o all_o of_o equal_a power_n and_o set_v at_o liberty_n to_o consult_v and_o determine_v at_o their_o pleasure_n neither_o have_v the_o jew_n that_o kind_n of_o government_n which_o you_o will_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v our_o lord_n and_o master_n ever_o prescribe_v to_o the_o gentile_n the_o judicial_a part_n of_o moses_n law_n and_o again_o as_o the_o people_n do_v increase_v so_o do_v the_o pain_n in_o each_o place_n and_o consequent_o the_o number_n of_o presbyter_n one_o man_n be_v no_o more_o able_a to_o serve_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o great_a city_n than_o to_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o earth_n upon_o his_o back_n and_o yet_o in_o each_o church_n and_o city_n one_o chief_a among_o they_o that_o as_o principal_a pastor_n of_o the_o place_n etc._n etc._n and_o to_o conclude_v you_o dislike_v a_o bishop_n shall_v have_v any_o diocese_n or_o church_n beside_o that_o one_o wherein_o he_o teach_v which_o nice_a conceit_n of_o you_o not_o only_o condemn_v the_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n that_o assign_v diocese_n to_o bishop_n but_o contradict_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o government_n which_o the_o apostle_n leave_v behind_o they_o 48._o they_o prim._n ep._n p._n 48._o now_o in_o what_o place_n the_o jew_n have_v their_o synagogue_n if_o it_o be_v not_o plain_a matth._n 9.35_o that_o they_o be_v far_o from_o be_v always_o great_a city_n will_v appear_v from_o the_o seat_n of_o their_o consistory_n i_o never_o yet_o hear_v of_o any_o who_o deny_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v synagogue_n in_o village_n as_o well_o as_o city_n but_o that_o the_o village-synagogue_n be_v independent_a and_o free_a from_o any_o subjection_n to_o the_o city_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n be_v now_o the_o question_n and_o our_o author_n be_v wise_a in_o say_v nothing_o of_o it_o for_o those_o who_o have_v take_v his_o side_n of_o the_o question_n though_o man_n of_o good_a read_n have_v not_o be_v able_a to_o produce_v any_o thing_n about_o it_o but_o their_o own_o affirmation_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o every_o good_a village_n of_o the_o jew_n have_v a_o synagogue_n as_o every_o parish_n with_o we_o have_v a_o church_n and_o great_a city_n have_v many_o synagogue_n as_o our_o great_a town_n have_v many_o parish_n and_o jerusalem_n particular_o be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v 480._o but_o that_o every_o village-synagogue_n have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o no_o dependence_n upon_o any_o other_o court_n or_o the_o chief_a officer_n of_o the_o city_n synagogue_n be_v very_o unlikely_a for_o so_o many_o independent_a and_o co_n ordinate_a officer_n can_v never_o without_o a_o miracle_n have_v preserve_v themselves_o one_o year_n under_o one_o national_a communion_n and_o in_o those_o great_a city_n where_o the_o jew_n have_v many_o congregation_n it_o can_v well_o be_v conceive_v that_o every_o one_o have_v supreme_a authority_n but_o that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o chief_a or_o council_n to_o which_o all_o those_o synagogue_n be_v subject_a this_o be_v most_o likely_a because_o common_a order_n and_o national_a agreement_n can_v well_o subsist_v without_o it_o i_o know_v there_o be_v some_o great_a man_n theod._n man_n grot._n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la sum_fw-la pot_n c._n 11._o gotof._n in_o l._n 2._o de_fw-fr cod._n theod._n have_v be_v very_o positive_a on_o the_o other_o side_n and_o have_v assert_v the_o independence_n of_o every_o synagogue_n that_o every_o such_o assembly_n have_v a_o chief_a officer_n answer_v to_o our_o bishop_n and_o all_o coordinate_a and_o of_o equal_a authority_n but_o for_o all_o this_o no_o evidence_n be_v produce_v and_o when_o learned_a man_n speak_v without_o book_n about_o distant_a matter_n of_o fact_n their_o authority_n be_v but_o small_a for_o than_o they_o do_v not_o speak_v from_o their_o knowledge_n and_o learning_n but_o their_o affection_n the_o scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n give_v no_o direction_n concern_v synagogue_n and_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v those_o assembly_n from_o whence_o some_o have_v conclude_v that_o in_o those_o time_n there_o be_v no_o such_o religious_a assembly_n among_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n we_o have_v frequent_a mention_n of_o they_o and_o sometime_o their_o officer_n be_v name_v but_o how_o they_o be_v order_v in_o respect_n of_o one_o another_o and_o of_o general_a communion_n the_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o give_v the_o least_o hint_n nay_o as_o to_o this_o matter_n the_o writing_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v not_o plain_a and_o though_o they_o be_v yet_o they_o taste_v too_o much_o of_o the_o fable_n to_o be_v depend_v upon_o great_a man_n may_v guess_v and_o affirm_v according_a as_o they_o stand_v affect_v but_o when_o all_o be_v do_v this_o matter_n be_v still_o in_o the_o same_o obscurity_n for_o want_n of_o sufficient_a evidence_n after_o the_o establishment_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o find_v general_a officer_n of_o the_o jew_n endue_v with_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n and_o absolution_n but_o that_o every_o village_n or_o city-consistory_n have_v that_o power_n then_o we_o do_v not_o find_v and_o for_o aught_o appear_v they_o may_v have_v no_o more_o power_n than_o our_o churchwarden_n and_o vestry_n nay_o in_o the_o complaint_n the_o jew_n make_v to_o arcadius_n and_o honorius_n codesh_n honorius_n l._n 8._o de_fw-fr jud._n coeli_fw-la &_o sam._n l._n 15._o de_fw-fr jud._n l._n 29._o codesh_n that_o the_o civil_a officer_n have_v restore_v to_o communion_n several_a who_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o their_o law_n have_v cast_v out_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o those_o primate_fw-la the_o power_n seem_v to_o belong_v chief_o to_o these_o and_o they_o too_o derive_v their_o jurisdiction_n not_o from_o the_o synagogue_n but_o from_o the_o patriarch_n by_o who_o they_o be_v appoint_v and_o this_o invasion_n of_o the_o imperial_a officer_n be_v represent_v not_o as_o a_o injury_n to_o the_o vestry_n of_o village_n or_o city_n synagogue_n but_o only_o to_o these_o primate_fw-la who_o office_n be_v of_o great_a compass_n than_o the_o inspection_n of_o a_o single_a synagogue_n as_o appear_v from_o the_o last_o of_o those_o law_n cite_v in_o the_o margin_n where_o we_o be_v inform_v that_o upon_o extinction_n of_o the_o patriarch_n these_o primate_fw-la succeed_v to_o all_o their_o power_n but_o while_o i_o be_v think_v of_o the_o learned_a man_n who_o treat_v of_o this_o matter_n i_o have_v almost_o forget_v our_o author_n who_o tell_v 48._o tell_v prim._n ep_v p._n 48._o we_o that_o something_o will_v appear_v from_o the_o seat_n of_o their_o consistory_n let_v we_o therefore_o attend_v in_o city_n of_o less_o than_o sixscore_o family_n they_o place_v their_o consistory_n of_o three_o in_o city_n of_o more_o than_o a_o hundred_o and_o twenty_o family_n the_o court_n of_o twenty_o three_o maimon_n in_o sanedr_n c._n 1._o sect._n 5._o seld._n de_fw-fr synedr_n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o and_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o many_o of_o our_o country_n town_n with_o their_o precinct_n have_v more_o than_o 120_o family_n and_o our_o lesser_a village_n be_v as_o great_a as_o the_o city_n in_o the_o low_a account_n they_o must_v be_v very_o sore_o distress_a who_o repair_n to_o rabbin_n for_o propriety_n of_o expression_n or_o evidence_n of_o antiquity_n in_o maimonides_n his_o language_n it_o seem_v a_o place_n that_o have_v not_o 120_o family_n be_v a_o city_n and_o what_o if_o it_o have_v but_o three_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o furnish_v a_o triumviral_n consistory_n and_o therefore_o may_v pass_v for_o a_o rabbinical_a city_n but_o cunaeus_n defit_fw-la cunaeus_n cun._n de_fw-fr r._n p._n hebr._n l._n 1._o c._n 13._o ego_fw-la vero_fw-la aristoteli_fw-la assentior_fw-la ne_fw-la quidem_fw-la eam_fw-la esse_fw-la civitatem_fw-la civitas_n nomen_fw-la amittit_fw-la modus_fw-la si_fw-la defit_fw-la who_o love_v to_o
proportion_n they_o bear_v to_o our_o village_n and_o market-town_n the_o wall_n of_o old_a byzantium_n before_o they_o be_v pull_v down_o by_o severus_n be_v byz_n be_v diony_n byz_n forty_o furlong_n in_o circuit_n but_o when_o the_o wall_n be_v remove_v fifteen_o furlong_n further_o the_o space_n may_v yield_v we_o a_o city_n much_o more_o than_o double_a to_o the_o old_a one_o and_o this_o new_a one_o be_v effectual_o so_o for_o its_o circuit_n be_v something_o short_a of_o thirteen_o mile_n according_a to_o gellius_n c_o and_o they_o want_v but_o one_o furlong_n of_o fourteen_o mile_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o laonicus_n chalcocondulas_n though_o in_o the_o common_a m._n common_a p._n gell._n c._n p._n p._n 15._o de_fw-fr la_fw-fr vall._n lett._n de_fw-fr c._n p._n p._n 30._o spon_n voyage_n t._n 1._o p._n ●01_n 15._o m._n discourse_n of_o the_o people_n it_o pass_v for_o near_o twenty_o the_o present_a city_n have_v the_o same_o bound_n with_o that_o of_o constantine_n for_o when_o it_o be_v first_o build_v it_o fill_v that_o isthmus_n 〈◊〉_d isthmus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o do_v now_o themistius_n pet._n themistius_n zosim_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 30._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d themist_n or._n 6._o p._n 162._o ed._n pet._n speak_v of_o the_o improvement_n of_o byzantium_n by_o constantine_n what_o be_v once_o say_v he_o the_o hem_n of_o the_o city_n be_v now_o the_o centre_n and_o heart_n of_o it_o but_o constantinople_n will_v not_o be_v confine_v within_o those_o wall_n as_o wide_o as_o they_o be_v but_o soon_o run_v out_o into_o suburb_n syca_n which_o be_v now_o pera_n be_v but_o a_o suburb_n to_o that_o city_n yet_o it_o be_v p._n be_v steph._n the_o urb_n in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d zosim_fw-la l._n 4._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d topogr_n c._n p._n account_v itself_o a_o city_n in_o justinian_n time_n and_o call_v by_o his_o name_n hebdomum_n be_v reckon_v in_o the_o suburb_n though_o seven_o mile_n from_o the_o city_n p._n gellius_n do_v unfortunate_o make_v this_o a_o region_n of_o the_o city_n and_o du_n fresne_n have_v follow_v he_o in_o the_o mistake_n but_o they_o be_v refute_v by_o the_o very_a author_n and_o instance_n they_o produce_v for_o their_o opinion_n sozomen_n 〈◊〉_d sozomen_n sozom._n l._n c._n 24._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v express_o it_o be_v seven_o mile_n from_o the_o city_n that_o theodosius_n have_v build_v a_o church_n there_o which_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o john_n the_o baptist_n and_o socrates_n 12._o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 6._o c._n 12._o speak_v of_o that_o church_n say_v it_o be_v seven_o mile_n from_o c._n p._n and_o not_o far_o from_o the_o sea_n for_o epiphanius_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o land_v be_v say_v to_o have_v go_v to_o st._n john_n church_n in_o that_o place_n there_o be_v chron._n be_v ammian_n marc._n l._n 26._o idatij_fw-la chron._n a_o palace_n call_v secundianae_n and_o a_o famous_a tribunal_n where_o the_o emperor_n or_o caesar_n use_v to_o be_v declare_v valesius_fw-la 672._o valesius_fw-la vale_n in_o addend_n not._n ad_fw-la ammian_n marcell_n p._n 672._o have_v take_v great_a pain_n to_o assert_v the_o situation_n of_o this_o place_n and_o have_v do_v it_o so_o effectual_o as_o to_o leave_v no_o far_o place_n for_o doubt_n there_o be_v several_a other_o place_n that_o be_v out-parish_n of_o constantinople_n 3._o constantinople_n soz._n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o theodor._n l._n 5._o c._n 3._o such_o as_o marianae_n pharmaceus_fw-la or_o therapea_n the_o port_n call_v hieron_n hestiae_n afterward_o michaelium_fw-la which_o be_v about_o four_o mile_n from_o the_o city_n by_o water_n but_o twelve_o by_o land_n and_o elaea_n where_o sisinnius_n the_o bishop_n of_o c._n p._n have_v be_v parish-priest_n for_o he_o be_v not_o minister_n say_v socrates_n 26._o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 7._o c._n 26._o of_o any_o church_n within_o the_o city_n but_o in_o the_o suburb_n of_o c._n p._n which_o be_v call_v elaea_n to_o conclude_v such_o be_v the_o increase_n of_o this_o great_a city_n that_o sozomen_n 3._o sozomen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o do_v not_o stick_v to_o prefer_v it_o even_o to_o old_a rome_n and_o say_v that_o by_o general_a consent_n it_o be_v conclude_v to_o exceed_v rome_n in_o wealth_n and_o multitude_n of_o inhabitant_n these_o may_v seem_v perhaps_o prodigious_a and_o of_o no_o use_n in_o the_o present_a debate_n that_o take_v in_o the_o generality_n of_o city_n yet_o these_o have_v respective_o but_o one_o bishop_n at_o a_o time_n except_o in_o time_n of_o schism_n and_o then_o both_o party_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o there_o aught_o of_o right_a to_o be_v but_o one_o below_o these_o therefore_o we_o have_v another_o size_n of_o great_a city_n which_o may_v be_v reasonable_o think_v equal_a to_o the_o great_a now_o in_o europe_n athens_n 624._o athens_n dion_n halic_fw-mi l._n 4._o p._n 219._o l._n 9_o p._n 624._o be_v almost_o equal_a to_o rome_n within_o the_o wall_n and_o if_o we_o put_v the_o long_a wall_n that_o join_v the_o city_n to_o piraeus_n into_o the_o reckon_n 6._o reckon_n strab._n l._n 6._o it_o will_v swell_v up_o the_o sum_n to_o above_o twenty_o mile_n syracuse_z nic._n syracuse_z plut._n in_o nic._n be_v 20_o mile_n in_o circuit_n and_o equal_a to_o athens_n account_v 16._o account_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d diod._n sic._n l._n 16._o once_o the_o great_a of_o all_o the_o greek_a city_n and_o though_o it_o have_v variety_n of_o fortune_n yet_o it_o continue_v for_o many_o age_n the_o chief_a of_o sicily_n old_a corinth_n before_o it_o be_v raze_v by_o mummius_n be_v a_o great_a and_o wealthy_a city_n it_o be_v 8._o be_v strab._n l._n 8._o eighty_o five_o furlong_n that_o be_v near_o eleven_o mile_n in_o circuit_n as_o strabo_n report_v not_o from_o vulgar_a estimate_n but_o from_o his_o own_o survey_n for_o he_o have_v trace_v and_o measure_v the_o old_a wall_n in_o italy_n there_o be_v city_n that_o seem_v to_o surpass_v these_o milan_n the_o next_o after_o rome_n and_o therefore_o sometime_o call_v the_o second_o rome_n of_o italy_n be_v not_o far_o inferior_a to_o that_o imperial_a city_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o procopius_n 2._o procopius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d proc._n gotth_n l._n 2._o and_o ausonius_n auson_n ausonius_n nec_fw-la juncta_fw-la premit_fw-la vicinia_fw-la romae_fw-la auson_n it_o still_o retain_v the_o title_n of_o great_a and_o be_v now_o ten_o mile_n in_o compass_n but_o much_o below_o its_o ancient_a greatness_n as_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o old_a building_n without_o the_o wall_n do_v still_o witness_v but_o especial_o inferior_a to_o the_o old_a for_o number_n of_o people_n for_o when_o it_o be_v take_v by_o the_o goth_n in_o justinian_n time_n haesch_n time_n procop._n gotth_n l._n 2._o p._n 143._o ed._n haesch_n there_o be_v three_o hundred_o thousand_o man_n put_v to_o the_o sword_n the_o woman_n not_o reckon_v who_o be_v preserve_v and_o make_v a_o present_a to_o the_o burgundian_n for_o their_o service_n in_o that_o siege_n next_o to_o this_o be_v aquileia_n a_o city_n of_o superlative_a greatness_n 4._o greatness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d herod_n l._n 8._o c._n 4._o renown_v for_o be_v fatal_a to_o tyrant_n the_o compass_n of_o the_o wall_n be_v twelve_o some_o say_v eighteen_o mile_n beside_o great_a suburb_n mention_v by_o herodian_a ravenna_n d'ital_n ravenna_n claver_fw-la ital._n ant._n l._n 1._o c._n 28._o leand._n alb._n descr_n d'ital_n be_v about_o this_o size_n for_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o three_o town_n and_o therefore_o call_v trigemina_n by_o sidonius_n apollinaris_n the_o classis_fw-la which_o be_v the_o port_n and_o via_fw-la caesaris_fw-la which_o be_v all_o build_v and_o three_o mile_n in_o length_n and_o ravenna_n proper_o so_o call_v in_o gaul_n there_o be_v treves_n which_o ausonius_n auson_n ausonius_n dudum_fw-la celebrari_fw-la gallia_n gestet_fw-la treviricaeque_fw-la vrbis_fw-la solium_fw-la auson_n set_v before_o milan_n and_o yet_o intimate_v that_o it_o be_v rather_o postpone_v than_o put_v too_o forward_o arles_n and_o tholouze_n come_v into_o this_o number_n the_o late_a of_o which_o be_v commend_v aus_n commend_v coctilibus_fw-la muris_fw-la quam_fw-la circuit_n ambitus_fw-la ingens_fw-la quae_fw-la modo_fw-la quadruplices_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la cum_fw-la effunderet_fw-la urbes_fw-la non_fw-la ulla_fw-la exhaustae_fw-la sensit_fw-la dispendia_fw-la plebis_fw-la muris_fw-la civibus_fw-la ambitu_fw-la tabernis_fw-la et_fw-la sidoni_n te_fw-la maris_fw-la eoi_fw-la merces_fw-la &_o iberica_fw-la ditant_fw-la aus_n for_o the_o great_a circuit_n of_o its_o wall_n and_o number_n of_o inhabitant_n so_o populous_a that_o when_o it_o have_v late_o people_v four_o city_n it_o be_v not_o sensible_a of_o any_o loss_n of_o man_n in_o the_o same_o country_n narbo_n be_v
earthquake_n that_o destroy_v this_o whole_a century_n of_o city_n at_o once_o but_o he_o provide_v by_o this_o destruction_n that_o no_o body_n else_o shall_v ever_o find_v they_o but_o scaliger_n 258._o scaliger_n scal._n not._n in_o euseb_n chron._n p._n 258._o rebuke_n this_o extravagant_a destroyer_n and_o correct_v the_o figure_n instead_o of_o a_o hundred_o direct_v we_o to_o read_v ten_o i_o shall_v add_v no_o more_o here_o since_o i_o have_v give_v a_o account_n already_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o cretian_a bishop_n and_o city_n 60._o city_n prim._n ep._n p._n 60._o for_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o great_a city_n there_o be_v ten_o sometime_o twenty_o sometime_o more_o in_o the_o lesser_a town_n and_o more_o there_o have_v be_v have_v not_o the_o ambition_n of_o follow_v age_n with_o a_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la to_o the_o apostle_n rule_v judge_v a_o small_a place_n unbeseeming_a the_o honour_n and_o greatness_n of_o a_o bishop_n that_o the_o lesser_a city_n be_v much_o more_o numerous_a than_o the_o great_a be_v ready_o grant_v that_o these_o lesser_a city_n be_v no_o big_a than_o the_o generality_n of_o our_o market-town_n after_o all_o our_o author_n have_v do_v require_v far_a proof_n we_o have_v indeed_o some_o market-town_n that_o be_v not_o inferior_a to_o city_n but_o then_o they_o be_v not_o for_o our_o author_n purpose_n for_o they_o have_v many_o parish_n and_o church_n and_o can_v be_v crowd_v into_o one_o congregation_n city_n very_o small_a be_v likewise_o very_o rare_a and_o the_o generality_n be_v too_o great_a for_o a_o congregational_a bishop_n it_o be_v not_o the_o ambition_n of_o after-age_n that_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o bishop_n in_o mean_a place_n but_o when_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o name_n of_o great_a honour_n and_o have_v many_o civil_a privilege_n annex_v to_o it_o it_o be_v the_o ambition_n of_o vain_a man_n that_o instigate_v they_o to_o endeavour_v to_o be_v bishop_n though_o in_o a_o village_n and_o place_n where_o there_o never_o have_v be_v any_o before_o and_o it_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o church_n to_o put_v a_o stop_n to_o that_o ambition_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o secure_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o possibility_n of_o a_o general_a communion_n but_o our_o author_n complain_v that_o in_o some_o such_o place_n where_o they_o have_v be_v settle_v they_o be_v extinguish_v and_o in_o other_o place_n they_o be_v unite_v so_o phulla_n be_v unite_v to_o sugdaea_n and_o so_o tyropolis_n to_o alania_n these_o instance_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v for_o they_o be_v too_o new_a for_o our_o present_a purpose_n be_v of_o the_o twelve_o or_o thirteen_o century_n and_o these_o be_v not_o join_v because_o the_o diocese_n be_v small_a for_o those_o of_o bulgary_n to_o which_o the_o first_o instance_n appertain_v be_v very_o large_a without_o those_o union_n and_o in_o the_o other_o alania_n be_v not_o the_o name_n of_o a_o town_n but_o of_o a_o nation_n but_o the_o question_n be_v about_o primitive_a diocese_n it_o have_v be_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o have_v show_v of_o what_o extent_n they_o be_v for_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n and_o then_o to_o have_v inform_v we_o what_o alteration_n succeed_v age_n have_v make_v as_o to_o the_o bound_n of_o ancient_a bishopric_n how_o some_o come_v to_o be_v extinguish_v and_o other_o to_o be_v unite_v but_o the_o age_n that_o next_o follow_v the_o time_n to_o which_o our_o author_n confine_v his_o primitive_a episcopacy_n be_v so_o far_o from_o sink_v or_o unite_n bishopric_n that_o they_o divide_v those_o old_a one_o and_o make_v many_o of_o one_o and_o yet_o after_o all_o they_o be_v still_o of_o the_o diocesan_n way_n as_o will_v appear_v hereafter_o the_o reduce_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o sardinia_n to_o seven_o be_v likewise_o late_o and_o when_o they_o be_v most_o they_o be_v diocesan_n and_o not_o congregational_a and_o in_o the_o five_o century_n sirmond_n century_n not._n africa_n ed._n sirmond_n they_o be_v not_o so_o many_o as_o they_o be_v now_o for_o they_o be_v but_o five_o as_o for_o the_o bishopric_n of_o ireland_n and_o of_o italy_n they_o have_v be_v already_o consider_v at_o large_a and_o may_v be_v dismiss_v without_o far_a reply_n the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v once_o more_o arraign_v 61._o arraign_v prim._n ep_v p._n 61._o for_o forbid_a bishop_n in_o the_o least_o city_n but_o the_o equity_n of_o that_o canon_n as_o well_o as_o of_o several_a other_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n have_v be_v already_o defend_v from_o the_o cavil_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n and_o therefore_o ought_v in_o reason_n to_o be_v discharge_v from_o far_a vexation_n yet_o since_o these_o exception_n be_v make_v not_o only_o against_o this_o canon_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o that_o synod_n for_o curiosity_n sake_n they_o may_v be_v examine_v 61._o examine_v prim._n ep_v p._n 61._o i_o will_v not_o say_v that_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n there_o be_v arrian_n though_o the_o oriental_a prelate_n present_v there_o show_v themselves_o immediate_o after_o at_o philippopolis_n and_o the_o arrian_n be_v brand_v for_o not_o be_v content_v with_o small_a bishopric_n some_o man_n can_v use_v very_o crafty_a figure_n of_o speech_n when_o they_o have_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n i_o will_v not_o say_v but_o why_o i_o pray_v there_o lie_v no_o action_n of_o scandalum_fw-la magnatum_fw-la from_o those_o bishop_n he_o may_v safe_o venture_v to_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o they_o that_o he_o know_v to_o be_v true_a yet_o the_o modest_a diffident_a man_n will_v not_o say_v they_o be_v arrian_n no_o he_o will_v not_o say_v it_o forsooth_o but_o be_v there_o any_o ground_n for_o such_o a_o suspicion_n the_o good_a man_n will_v not_o say_v it_o why_o then_o do_v he_o say_v that_o he_o will_v not_o say_v it_o though_o the_o oriental_a prelate_n present_v there_o show_v themselves_o present_o after_o at_o philippolis_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o he_o will_v not_o say_v that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v arrian_n a_o captious_a man_n may_v take_v this_o to_o be_v nonsense_n but_o i_o will_v not_o say_v it_o when_o a_o dissenter_n mumble_v after_o this_o manner_n it_o be_v not_o altogether_o for_o the_o elegance_n of_o the_o figure_n but_o when_o he_o know_v that_o what_o he_o offer_v for_o a_o argument_n be_v either_o a_o lie_n or_o not_o to_o the_o purpose_n than_o such_o reserve_v as_o this_o serve_v to_o bring_v he_o off_o in_o case_n of_o detection_n for_o he_o will_v not_o say_v it_o then_o for_o all_o the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o present_a case_n our_o author_n have_v a_o mind_n to_o disparage_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o this_o canon_n that_o forbid_v the_o make_n of_o bishop_n in_o village_n and_o such_o small_a city_n where_o there_o have_v be_v none_o before_o to_o take_v away_o their_o credit_n he_o intimate_v that_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n be_v arrian_n some_o arrian_n bishop_n come_v 8._o come_v ep._n synod_n sardic_n ap_fw-mi theodor._n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o indeed_o to_o sardica_n but_o they_o have_v no_o more_o to_o do_v in_o make_v that_o canon_n than_o mr._n clerkson_n for_o they_o never_o join_v with_o the_o western_a bishop_n so_o far_o as_o to_o be_v present_a with_o they_o and_o 20._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 20._o they_o refuse_v so_o much_o as_o to_o confer_v or_o to_o speak_v with_o they_o unless_o they_o will_v first_o put_v athanasius_n and_o paul_n bishop_n of_o c._n p._n out_o of_o their_o communion_n and_o when_o they_o can_v not_o obtain_v that_o they_o leave_v sardica_n and_o go_v to_o philippopolis_n and_o though_o our_o author_n be_v not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o yet_o he_o can_v not_o forbear_v except_v against_o that_o synod_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o those_o arrian_n who_o he_o know_v have_v not_o the_o least_o hand_n in_o any_o of_o the_o canon_n make_v at_o sardica_n yet_o the_o close_a of_o this_o exception_n surpass_v all_o the_o rest_n the_o arrian_n be_v brand_v for_o not_o be_v content_v with_o small_a bishopric_n by_o which_o observation_n our_o author_n will_v suggest_v if_o the_o reader_n will_v take_v it_o that_o these_o arrian_n make_v that_o canon_n which_o forbid_v bishop_n to_o be_v ordain_v in_o small_a city_n because_o they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o small_a bishopric_n whereas_o this_o canon_n be_v make_v against_o the_o innovation_n of_o the_o arrian_n who_o make_v bishop_n in_o such_o small_a place_n where_o there_o never_o have_v be_v any_o before_o and_o ischyras_n 20_o ischyras_n socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 20_o ordain_v in_o a_o small_a village_n in_o egypt_n be_v among_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n at_o sardica_n and_o it_o may_v be_v imagine_v will_v not_o very_o ready_o subscribe_v to_o that_o canon_n which_o condemn_v his_o
receive_v all_o the_o people_n suppose_v therefore_o in_o rome_n for_o instance_n a_o million_o of_o soul_n which_o i_o think_v be_v the_o low_a estimate_n that_o be_v ever_o make_v of_o that_o people_n if_o for_o the_o three_o first_o age_n but_o a_o ten_o part_n be_v christian_a not_o twenty_o church_n such_o as_o the_o christian_n be_v provide_v of_o at_o that_o time_n can_v suffice_v in_o london_n though_o those_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v much_o the_o great_a number_n and_o make_v up_o the_o gross_a of_o the_o people_n yet_o the_o dissenter_n be_v they_o willing_a to_o join_v in_o one_o congregation_n will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o meet_v in_o one_o place_n and_o their_o way_n of_o service_n make_v they_o more_o capable_a of_o great_a congregation_n than_o the_o primitive_a christian_n since_o general_o speak_v they_o seem_v to_o have_v no_o other_o public_a act_n of_o religious_a worship_n but_o to_o hear_v nay_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o sect_n of_o they_o so_o mean_v but_o will_v think_v themselves_o persecute_v shall_v all_o of_o that_o sect_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o london_n be_v stint_v to_o one_o place_n of_o meeting_n amsterdam_n may_v exceed_v london_n in_o number_n of_o sect_n though_o it_o be_v inferior_a to_o it_o in_o number_n of_o people_n the_o jew_n there_o inhabit_v one_o good_a quarter_n the_o papist_n be_v so_o numerous_a that_o i_o have_v heen_n inform_v they_o have_v near_o thirty_o chapel_n within_o that_o city_n the_o lutheran_n there_o have_v several_a church_n to_o say_v nothing_o of_o other_o sect_n that_o be_v very_o numerous_a yet_o those_o of_o the_o establish_a religion_n be_v reckon_v the_o great_a part_n and_o require_v many_o church_n for_o their_o worship_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o primitive_a christian_n that_o we_o may_v better_o conceive_v the_o state_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o first_o three_o age_n let_v we_o consider_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o they_o to_o thrive_v and_o at_o last_o to_o become_v master_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n under_o all_o those_o great_a discouragement_n to_o which_o they_o be_v all_o the_o while_n subject_n they_o have_v seldom_o any_o friend_n in_o court_n and_o there_o be_v but_o two_o reign_n in_o all_o that_o time_n in_o which_o they_o have_v any_o countenance_n but_o be_v frequent_o set_v upon_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o persecute_v with_o full_a intent_n of_o utter_a extirpation_n they_o can_v make_v no_o faction_n in_o the_o state_n for_o the_o root_n of_o popular_a government_n have_v be_v pluck_v up_o and_o the_o government_n of_o the_o empire_n be_v too_o absolute_a to_o bear_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n they_o have_v no_o power_n in_o the_o army_n for_o there_o be_v but_o few_o of_o they_o employ_v that_o way_n and_o general_o speak_v they_o do_v not_o like_o the_o service_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o in_o less_o than_o three_o age_n they_o possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o empire_n and_o give_v law_n to_o the_o heathen_a now_o if_o we_o speak_v human_o of_o this_o matter_n we_o can_v resolve_v it_o into_o no_o other_o cause_n than_o the_o great_a number_n of_o the_o christian_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n be_v wonderful_a in_o preserve_v and_o raise_v this_o meek_a and_o simple_a people_n but_o the_o mean_n he_o choose_v be_v the_o same_o he_o have_v take_v before_o in_o egypt_n for_o the_o deliverance_n of_o israel_n he_o increase_v they_o exceed_o and_o so_o make_v they_o strong_a than_o their_o enemy_n the_o number_n of_o the_o christian_n be_v great_a from_o the_o begin_n and_o what_o be_v say_v of_o our_o saviour_n in_o judaea_n become_v true_a in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n that_o all_o the_o world_n do_v run_v after_o he_o this_o tacitus_n and_o pliny_n do_v affirm_v early_o this_o tertullian_n set_v out_o with_o great_a ostentation_n towards_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o three_o century_n but_o these_o testimony_n with_o several_a other_o have_v be_v urge_v already_o etc._n already_o vindicat._n prim._n ch_n p._n 54._o 55_o 458_o 499_o 500_o etc._n etc._n and_o need_v not_o to_o be_v insist_v on_o in_o this_o place_n i_o will_v add_v only_o one_o passage_n more_o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n out_o of_o maximin_n 9_o maximin_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 9_o c._n 9_o letter_n to_o sabinus_n where_o he_o set_v out_o the_o occasion_n of_o that_o great_a persecution_n under_o dioclesian_n dioclesian_n say_v he_o and_o maximian_n my_o father_n and_o my_o lord_n see_v all_o people_n almost_o to_o have_v forsake_v the_o worship_n of_o the_o god_n and_o to_o have_v join_v themselves_o to_o the_o christian_n have_v right_o order_v that_o those_o who_o have_v forsake_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o god_n shall_v undergo_v exemplary_a punishment_n now_o this_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o a_o enemy_n aught_o to_o have_v the_o great_a weight_n and_o we_o can_v doubt_v but_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o persecution_n the_o christian_n be_v become_v the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n and_o therefore_o in_o the_o great_a city_n they_o can_v not_o meet_v in_o one_o assembly_n and_o in_o the_o chief_a city_n they_o can_v not_o have_v so_o few_o as_o twenty_o congregation_n but_o you_o know_v the_o fable_n the_o toad_n can_v not_o conceive_v a_o elephant_n any_o big_a than_o the_o stretch_v of_o his_o own_o skin_n mr._n clerkson_n 69._o clerkson_n prim._n ep_v p._n 69._o can_v meet_v with_o but_o one_o city_n small_a or_o great_a for_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n who_o inhabitant_n be_v general_o christian_n and_o that_o be_v neocaesarea_n of_o who_o conversion_n gregory_n thaumatargus_n be_v the_o instrument_n 70._o instrument_n p._n 70._o but_o for_o all_o this_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o the_o christian_n in_o that_o city_n be_v more_o than_o can_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n and_o to_o make_v it_o probable_a that_o all_o the_o city_n make_v but_o one_o congregation_n he_o offer_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o we_o see_v before_o that_o this_o place_n be_v not_o very_o populous_a and_o then_o that_o gregory_n build_v but_o one_o church_n there_o he_o will_v doubtless_o have_v erect_v more_o if_o more_o have_v be_v needful_a the_o first_o reason_n have_v be_v reject_v already_o and_o they_o must_v be_v very_o easy_a that_o admit_v it_o because_o eleven_o egyptian_a bishop_n be_v banish_v to_o this_o place_n therefore_o it_o have_v no_o more_o people_n than_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o church_n yet_o as_o weak_a as_o this_o be_v the_o other_o be_v no_o wise_a because_o gregory_n build_v but_o one_o church_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o more_o nay_o though_o he_o may_v have_v build_v several_a parish-church_n yet_o the_o cathedral_n which_o by_o the_o ancient_n be_v call_v the_o church_n by_o way_n of_o eminence_n may_v be_v only_o mention_v and_o in_o the_o great_a city_n where_o we_o be_v sure_o there_o be_v many_o church_n they_o speak_v of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v the_o bishop_n as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o in_o the_o place_n and_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n in_o any_o city_n for_o some_o use_n of_o religion_n that_o be_v for_o baptism_n and_o penance_n so_o that_o to_o speak_v proper_o and_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o ancient_a time_n there_o be_v in_o a_o city_n but_o one_o church_n the_o other_o be_v but_o parish-chappels_a and_o oratory_n gregory_n therefore_o may_v build_v but_o one_o church_n and_o yet_o his_o city_n may_v have_v many_o parish-congregation_n but_o for_o neocaesarea_n we_o have_v great_a probability_n that_o it_o be_v too_o populous_a for_o one_o religious_a assembly_n for_o first_o it_o be_v the_o metropolis_n of_o pontus_n and_o that_o long_a before_o it_o be_v convert_v by_o gregory_n as_o holstenius_fw-la neocaes_n holstenius_fw-la luc._n holsten_n in_o steph._n v._o neocaes_n prove_v by_o a_o medal_n of_o severus_n which_o have_v upon_o the_o reverse_a the_o age_n of_o this_o city_n in_o the_o next_o place_n it_o be_v eminent_a for_o liberal_a study_n which_o little_a town_n never_o be_v and_o basil_n 64._o basil_n bas_n ep_v 64._o relate_v with_o what_o earnestness_n the_o magistrate_n pray_v he_o to_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o instruction_n of_o their_o youth_n and_o last_o the_o character_n which_o the_o same_o father_n give_v 75._o give_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d basil_n ep_v 75._o it_o of_o be_v the_o most_o illustrious_a of_o city_n can_v agree_v with_o that_o meaness_n under_o which_o mr._n clerkson_n do_v represent_v it_o there_o be_v another_o city_n in_o phrygia_n who_o inhabitant_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v all_o christian_n euseb_n h._n l._n 8._o c._n 25._o vale_n 25._o c._n 11._o ed._n vale_n and_o all_o with_o the_o city_n burn_v together_o but_o
this_o be_v in_o the_o four_o century_n in_o the_o persecution_n raise_v by_o maximian_n anno._n 312._o that_o this_o be_v a_o small_a town_n we_o have_v from_o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o he_o note_v far_a that_o they_o have_v magistrate_n but_o that_o it_o have_v a_o bishop_n neither_o eusebius_n nor_o lactantius_n mention_n and_o for_o aught_o that_o appear_v it_o may_v belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o some_o other_o place_n however_o let_v the_o city_n be_v as_o little_a as_o it_o will_v the_o bishop_n may_v be_v diocesan_n though_o all_o his_o town_n make_v but_o one_o congregation_n c_o how_o predominant_a heathenism_n be_v in_o the_o city_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n before_o constantine_n may_v be_v collect_v say_v our_o author_n in_o and_o after_o his_o reign_n if_o it_o be_v spread_v and_o prevalent_a when_o the_o power_n of_o it_o be_v so_o much_o break_v it_o will_v be_v easy_a to_o infer_v what_o it_o be_v before_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o christianity_n receive_v very_o great_a increase_n by_o the_o favour_n and_o the_o zeal_n of_o constantine_n yet_o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o the_o desolation_n under_o dioclesian_n and_o his_o colleague_n be_v so_o great_a and_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n destroy_v and_o fright_v out_o of_o their_o profession_n so_o excessive_a that_o it_o must_v be_v a_o great_a while_n before_o the_o christian_n can_v recover_v themselves_o to_o that_o condition_n in_o which_o the_o persecution_n find_v they_o and_o though_o under_o constantine_n and_o his_o son_n the_o church_n have_v a_o great_a seem_a increase_n yet_o many_o of_o the_o new_a convert_v be_v induce_v by_o human_a consideration_n and_o argument_n extrinsic_a to_o religion_n make_v great_a show_n than_o strength_n and_o in_o julian_n reign_n when_o worldly_a advantage_n be_v on_o the_o heathen_a side_n many_o of_o these_o turn_v again_o to_o their_o old_a superstition_n and_o most_o of_o the_o instance_n which_o be_v bring_v by_o our_o author_n to_o show_v the_o number_n of_o heathen_a after_o 71._o after_o prim._n ep_v p._n 71._o constantine_n be_v in_o that_o reign_n yet_o let_v we_o hear_v the_o particular_n 71._o particular_n prim._n ep_v p._n 71._o that_o we_o may_v afford_v the_o great_a advantage_n to_o christianity_n let_v we_o instance_n principal_o in_o palestine_n where_o the_o gospel_n first_o move_v may_v in_o reason_n be_v think_v to_o have_v make_v the_o great_a progress_n some_o be_v never_o to_o be_v more_o narrow_o observe_v than_o when_o they_o pretend_v to_o offer_v favour_n and_o advantage_n i_o be_o apt_a to_o believe_v that_o if_o our_o author_n have_v find_v any_o instance_n more_o to_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o cause_n he_o may_v have_v wave_v this_o compliment_n to_o christianity_n here_o he_o say_v the_o gospel_n first_o move_v and_o therefore_o shall_v have_v make_v the_o great_a progress_n but_o the_o great_a revolution_n that_o happen_v in_o that_o country_n soon_o after_o the_o plant_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v possible_o have_v render_v the_o condition_n of_o christianity_n there_o much_o worse_a than_o it_o be_v some_o time_n after_o in_o other_o country_n nay_o worse_o than_o it_o be_v in_o some_o of_o the_o city_n of_o palestine_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o instance_n sebaste_n which_o be_v samaria_n be_v bring_v as_o a_o example_n of_o a_o city_n much_o addict_v to_o heathenism_n after_o constantine_n time_n and_o yet_o at_o the_o preach_n of_o philip_n the_o deacon_n all_o the_o city_n be_v say_v 14._o say_v act._n 8.6_o 8_o 10_o 12_o 14._o to_o be_v convert_v lydda_n be_v a_o city_n of_o judaea_n call_v also_o diospolis_n and_o st._n luke_n 33._o luke_n act._n 9.32_o 33._o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v all_o convert_v by_o s._n peter_n all_o that_o dwell_v at_o lydda_n turn_v unto_o the_o lord_n yet_o about_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christianity_n have_v make_v so_o little_a progress_n that_o both_o village_n and_o city_n there_o be_v exceed_o heathenish_a but_o we_o must_v find_v no_o fault_n because_o he_o pretend_v to_o afford_v christianity_n great_a advantage_n by_o these_o example_n gaza_n above_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v stigmatise_v by_o all_o as_o most_o heathenish_a yet_o as_o heathenish_a as_o it_o be_v after_o constantine_n time_n the_o bishop_n of_o it_o have_v many_o congregation_n before_o for_o silvanus_n who_o suffer_v martyrdom_n in_o the_o last_o persecution_n be_v style_v by_o eusebius_n 13._o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 8._o c._n 13._o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o gaza_n caesarea_n too_o in_o our_o author_n judgement_n seem_v not_o much_o better_a and_o yet_o there_o the_o bishop_n have_v many_o church_n too_o in_o the_o former_a part_n of_o constantine_n reign_n as_o his_o letter_n to_o eusebius_n 15._o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ep._n const_n ad_fw-la euseb_n theod._n l._n 1._o c._n 15._o mention_n in_o palestine_n therefore_o our_o author_n mention_n many_o city_n where_o there_o be_v heathen_n after_o constantine_n reign_n and_o instance_n chief_o in_o those_o where_o in_o julian_n time_n the_o heathen_a party_n raise_v tumult_n and_o commit_v many_o murder_n and_o barbarity_n but_o this_o do_v not_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v the_o major_a part_n for_o a_o small_a number_n under_o the_o countenance_n and_o instigation_n of_o the_o emperor_n may_v do_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o mischief_n without_o opposition_n we_o have_v a_o fresh_a instance_n how_o insolent_a a_o small_a party_n may_v grow_v under_o the_o countenance_n of_o authority_n not_o quite_o so_o absolute_a nor_o so_o implicit_o obey_v as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a emperor_n be_v and_o that_o the_o christian_n be_v then_o when_o they_o endure_v these_o indignity_n much_o the_o great_a number_n sozomen_n who_o relate_v most_o of_o those_o tumult_n do_v plain_o show_v and_o that_o upon_o this_o very_a account_n julian_n find_v himself_o oblige_v to_o use_v artifice_n rather_o than_o force_v in_o the_o restore_n of_o his_o superstition_n julian_n say_v that_o historian_n 〈◊〉_d historian_n soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 16._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d zealous_a to_o make_v heathenism_n prevail_v be_v much_o grieve_v to_o see_v it_o overcome_v by_o the_o christian_a religion_n which_o be_v in_o the_o general_n esteem_v prefer_v to_o it_o and_o it_o trouble_v he_o to_o think_v that_o his_o religion_n must_v sink_v as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v dead_a for_o though_o the_o temple_n be_v open_v again_o and_o the_o old_a rite_n restore_v yet_o he_o observe_v that_o the_o wife_n and_o child_n and_o servant_n even_o of_o the_o heathen_a priest_n be_v general_o christian_n from_o hence_o it_o be_v clear_a how_o the_o great_a part_n and_o body_n of_o the_o people_n stand_v affect_v to_o christianity_n and_o though_o here_o and_o there_o a_o city_n may_v abound_v with_o heathen_a it_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o where_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o religion_n a_o party_n which_o to_o the_o whole_a do_v not_o bear_v the_o proportion_n of_o one_o to_o ten_o may_v in_o some_o few_o place_n happen_v to_o be_v predominant_a phoenicia_n follow_v palestine_n and_o these_o our_o author_n 72._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 72._o observe_v from_o theodoret_n be_v mad_a upon_o their_o idol_n and_o idolatrous_a rite_n and_o this_o observe_v by_o chrysostom_n in_o arcadius_n his_o reign_n that_o there_o be_v superstitious_a people_n in_o phoenicia_n at_o that_o time_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v and_o perhaps_o more_o than_o in_o most_o place_n but_o that_o they_o be_v the_o great_a part_n or_o near_o equal_a to_o the_o christian_n there_o do_v not_o appear_v from_o any_o thing_n produce_v by_o our_o author_n nay_o the_o contrary_a appear_v from_o that_o relation_n of_o theodoret_n how_o chrysostom_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o few_o monk_n pull_v down_o the_o heathen_a temple_n of_o the_o country_n in_o syria_n our_o author_n 73._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 73._o meet_v with_o heliopolis_n a_o place_n singular_a for_o superstition_n and_o beastliness_n where_o not_o one_o will_v endure_v to_o hear_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n and_o arethusa_n he_o think_v be_v not_o much_o better_o furnish_v with_o christian_n because_o they_o all_o join_v in_o the_o murder_n of_o their_o bishop_n yet_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n sozomen_n assign_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o bishop_n return_v when_o he_o have_v once_o flee_v because_o 10._o because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 10._o there_o be_v many_o like_a to_o be_v bring_v in_o danger_n upon_o his_o account_n apamea_n be_v mention_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o this_o be_v a_o metropolis_n say_v our_o author_n here_o the_o multitude_n be_v only_o restrain_v through_o fear_n from_o hinder_v the_o demolish_n of_o jupiter_n be_v temple_n theodor._n l._n 5._o c._n 21._o
poor_a heathen_a priest_n be_v force_v to_o bring_v his_o goose_n himself_o and_o to_o provide_v his_o own_o sacrifice_n constantinople_n be_v a_o christian_a city_n from_o its_o first_o foundation_n 3._o foundation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so●_n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o have_v never_o be_v pollute_v with_o idol_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o citizen_n be_v christian_n require_v many_o church_n to_o assemble_v in_o constantine_n build_v several_a and_o of_o the_o rest_n some_o be_v build_v by_o the_o bishop_n other_o by_o the_o people_n of_o the_o place_n and_o the_o goodness_n and_o charity_n of_o the_o christian_a inhabitant_n there_o be_v so_o great_a that_o they_o gain_v many_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o almost_o all_o the_o heathen_a to_o become_v christian_n and_o even_o in_o arabia_n where_o mr._n clerkson_n can_v find_v few_o or_o no_o christian_n in_o valens_n his_o time_n the_o great_a and_o vast_a city_n bostra_n for_o so_o ammianus_n marcellinus_n 2._o marcellinus_n civitates_fw-la ingentes_fw-la bostra_n etc._n etc._n ammian_n marc._n l._n 14._o c._n 2._o call_v it_o be_v at_o least_o half_a christian_a as_o titus_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n give_v out_o who_o be_v quote_v for_o it_o by_o julian_n bostren_n julian_n julian_n ep._n add_v bostren_n the_o apostate_n nay_o some_o country_n be_v say_v to_o be_v general_o christian_a before_o the_o end_n of_o the_o three_o century_n so_o eusebius_n 8._o eusebius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 9_o c._n 8._o represent_v the_o armenian_n against_o who_o maximin_n declare_v war_n upon_o that_o account_n and_o while_o he_o endeavour_v to_o force_v they_o to_o idolatry_n instead_o of_o friend_n and_o confederate_n he_o make_v they_o enemy_n so_o wonderful_o do_v the_o word_n of_o god_n prevail_v that_o to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o eusebius_n 13._o eusebius_n euseb_n praepar_fw-la eu._n l._n 1._o p._n 12_o 13._o whole_a miriads_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n and_o child_n of_o bond_n and_o free_a of_o barbarian_n and_o greek_n in_o every_o place_n and_o city_n and_o country_n in_o every_o nation_n under_o heaven_n learn_v the_o precept_n of_o our_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o become_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n 78._o christ_n prim._n ep_v p._n 78._o nor_o be_v our_o author_n content_v to_o reduce_v the_o primitive_a christian_n to_o a_o small_a number_n and_o to_o render_v they_o a_o mean_a party_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o heathen_a even_o after_o they_o be_v become_v their_o master_n but_o he_o bring_v in_o yet_o further_a abatement_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o his_o account_n for_o jew_n and_o heretic_n the_o jew_n say_v he_o be_v numerous_a in_o these_o city_n and_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n without_o multitude_n of_o they_o this_o he_o prove_v chief_o out_o of_o josephus_n but_o all_o those_o testimony_n be_v too_o early_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n and_o the_o synagogue_n of_o jew_n that_o s._n paul_n meet_v with_o in_o almost_o every_o city_n where_o he_o come_v be_v so_o far_o from_o diminish_v the_o number_n of_o christian_n that_o their_o increase_n be_v general_o from_o hence_o here_o the_o apostle_n usual_o preach_v the_o gospel_n till_o they_o have_v change_v the_o synagogue_n into_o church_n under_o trajan_n and_o adrian_n the_o jew_n be_v very_o numerous_a and_o their_o number_n may_v then_o tempt_v they_o to_o revolt_v but_o the_o destruction_n which_o they_o bring_v upon_o themselves_o be_v so_o great_a such_o number_n slay_v that_o they_o seem_v to_o be_v near_o extirpation_n after_o this_o they_o be_v so_o low_a that_o for_o some_o age_n they_o be_v not_o mention_v for_o any_o enterprise_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o christian_n increase_v daily_o till_o they_o prevail_v over_o both_o jew_n and_o heathen_a and_o st._n austin_n cred._n austin_n plures_fw-la enim_fw-la jam_fw-la christiani_n sunt_fw-la quam_fw-la si_fw-la judaei_n simulacrorum_fw-la cultoribus_fw-la adjungantur_fw-la aug._n de_fw-fr util._n cred._n make_v the_o christian_n in_o his_o time_n to_o be_v more_o numerous_a than_o jew_n and_o idolater_n put_v together_o not_o confine_v his_o comparison_n within_o the_o empire_n but_o make_v it_o general_a and_o consequent_o take_v in_o all_o the_o barbarous_a nation_n within_o his_o knowledge_n yet_o in_o the_o four_o century_n mr._n clerkson_n bring_v a_o instance_n or_o two_o to_o show_v that_o in_o some_o place_n the_o jew_n be_v numerous_a in_o constantine_n be_v time_n say_v he_o 80._o he_o prim._n ep_v p._n 80._o they_o possess_v diocaesarea_n and_o tiberias_n diospolis_n also_o and_o many_o other_o town_n and_o be_v so_o numerous_a as_o to_o raise_v a_o war_n against_o the_o emperor_n soz._n l._n 4._o c._n 6._o that_o the_o jew_n be_v numerous_a in_o that_o age_n especial_o about_o palestine_n can_v be_v deny_v and_o that_o they_o have_v several_a town_n entire_o to_o themselves_o socrates_n 3._o socrates_n socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 3._o and_o epiphanius_n 11._o epiphanius_n epiph._n haer._n 30._o ss_z 11._o and_o other_o writer_n affirm_v but_o then_o these_o town_n whole_o inhabit_v by_o jew_n be_v without_o this_o question_n for_o these_o make_v no_o abatement_n of_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n in_o city_n where_o they_o have_v bishop_n and_o church_n it_o will_v be_v of_o some_o use_n upon_o this_o occasion_n to_o clear_v a_o passage_n of_o epiphanius_n which_o petavius_n have_v mistake_v in_o the_o relation_n which_o epiphanius_n give_v of_o count_n joseph_n the_o jew_n among_o other_o thing_n he_o make_v he_o say_v that_o ellal_n the_o jewish_a patriarch_n at_o the_o point_n of_o death_n send_v for_o the_o bishop_n of_o tiberias_n and_o be_v baptize_v of_o he_o whereas_o then_o there_o be_v neither_o bishop_n nor_o church_n nor_o christian_a in_o tiberias_n and_o therefore_o instead_o of_o bishop_n of_o that_o place_n he_o shall_v have_v render_v 4._o render_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epiph._n haer._n 4._o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o neighbourhood_n of_o tiberias_n for_o it_o be_v there_o that_o the_o patriarch_n reside_v and_o send_v for_o some_o bishop_n of_o a_o neighbour_a town_n and_o that_o the_o word_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v render_v will_v be_v clear_a from_o what_o the_o same_o joseph_n say_v a_o little_a after_o when_o constantine_n have_v confer_v upon_o he_o the_o honour_n of_o a_o count_n he_o bid_v he_o beg_v what_o favour_n he_o please_v but_o ask_v only_o this_o that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o emperor_n commission_n 11._o commission_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epiph._n haer._n n._n 11._o to_o build_v church_n in_o the_o city_n and_o village_n of_o the_o jew_n where_o there_o be_v none_o because_o there_o be_v neither_o heathen_a nor_o samaritan_n nor_o christian_a among_o they_o and_o especial_o in_o tiberias_n and_o diocaesarea_n and_o nazareth_n and_o capernaum_n for_o in_o these_o place_n they_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o of_o another_o nation_n to_o live_v among_o they_o now_o as_o these_o place_n be_v not_o for_o mr._n clerkson_n purpose_n while_o they_o be_v whole_o possess_v of_o jew_n so_o neither_o will_v the_o objection_n last_o long_o after_o church_n be_v build_v in_o they_o for_o const_n for_o aur._n vict._n in_o constantio_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d cedren_n ad_fw-la a_o 15._o const_n these_o jew_n revolt_a against_o constantius_n and_o set_v up_o a_o tyrant_n of_o their_o own_o one_o patricius_n be_v total_o destroy_v by_o gallus_n and_o diocaesarea_n raze_v to_o the_o ground_n but_o the_o jew_n also_o be_v numerous_a in_o these_o city_n i.e._n where_o the_o heathen_a be_v suppose_v by_o he_o to_o be_v the_o major_a part_n and_o there_o be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n without_o multitude_n of_o they_o the_o ancient_a instance_n out_o of_o josephus_n i_o pass_v by_o as_o too_o early_o and_o not_o to_o the_o present_a purpose_n but_o one_o thing_n he_o offer_v that_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v omit_v that_o 81._o that_o prim._n ep_v p._n 81._o chrysostom_n seem_v to_o signify_v that_o in_o his_o time_n they_o be_v as_o many_o as_o the_o christian_n in_o that_o city_n i._n e._n in_o antioch_n for_o he_o exhort_v each_o of_o the_o christian_n to_o reduce_v one_o jew_n to_o the_o christian_a profession_n to_o say_v the_o truth_n this_o inference_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o seem_v to_o be_v reasonable_a for_o first_o chrysostom_n can_v not_o speak_v to_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o antioch_n together_o though_o his_o voice_n have_v be_v as_o great_a as_o his_o eloquence_n and_o to_o strain_v this_o expression_n to_o the_o utmost_a if_o it_o shall_v suppose_v the_o jew_n as_o many_o as_o those_o he_o address_v his_o discourse_n to_o yet_o will_v they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o christian_a congregation_n which_o may_v possible_o be_v two_o or_o three_o thousand_o when_o chrysostom_n preach_v though_o that_o great_a man_n
sometime_o in_o his_o sermon_n complain_v of_o the_o smallness_n of_o his_o auditory_a but_o this_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o the_o language_n of_o a_o preacher_n be_v not_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o a_o accountant_a nor_o when_o he_o exhort_v every_o one_o to_o convert_v his_o man_n be_v he_o suppose_v to_o be_v tell_v of_o head_n and_o compare_v of_o party_n but_o since_o the_o jew_n will_v admit_v no_o public_a exhortation_n then_o as_o they_o do_v endure_v in_o some_o place_n since_o for_o form_n sake_n this_o zealour_n preacher_n for_o the_o advancement_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o save_n of_o soul_n may_v direct_v his_o people_n as_o they_o have_v occasion_n to_o deal_v private_o and_o apart_o with_o the_o jew_n and_o to_o endeavour_v every_o one_o to_o gain_v his_o convert_n and_o this_o i_o have_v say_v to_o show_v the_o inconclusiveness_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n argument_n but_o in_o truth_n the_o whole_a be_v a_o downright_a fraud_n for_o st._n chrysostom_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v direct_v not_o every_o christian_n to_o convert_v his_o jew_n but_o every_o zealous_a and_o faithful_a christian_a to_o endeavour_n to_o reclaim_v or_o convert_v his_o brother_n and_o that_o whether_o heathen_a or_o jew_n or_o which_o he_o there_o chief_o intend_v negligent_a christian_n a_o little_a before_o he_o have_v lament_v the_o carelessness_n of_o christian_a master_n who_o permit_v their_o wife_n or_o servant_n to_o frequent_v the_o theater_n or_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n when_o it_o be_v in_o their_o power_n to_o restrain_v they_o and_o by_o that_o influence_n which_o they_o have_v over_o they_o dispose_v they_o either_o to_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n or_o more_o strict_o live_v up_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o it_o if_o already_o embrace_v for_o this_o frequent_v of_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n in_o these_o person_n arise_v not_o from_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o jewish_a religion_n but_o from_o the_o same_o vanity_n which_o induce_v they_o to_o frequent_v the_o theater_n that_o be_v the_o pleasure_n of_o see_v pompous_a and_o even_o theatrical_a ceremony_n practise_v in_o they_o for_o so_o chrysostom_n argue_v with_o they_o tell_v i_o what_o be_v it_o that_o you_o run_v to_o see_v in_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o hear_v man_n sound_v with_o trumpet_n for_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o jew_n retain_v that_o custom_n and_o strive_v to_o perform_v it_o with_o great_a art_n in_o their_o religious_a service_n which_o may_v draw_v great_a number_n of_o idle_a person_n whether_o christian_n or_o heathen_n to_o hear_v they_o such_o person_n ought_v no_o more_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v jew_n than_o all_o those_o to_o have_v be_v papist_n who_o vain_a curiosity_n tempt_v they_o to_o enter_v the_o popish_a chapel_n in_o the_o last_o reign_n as_o for_o the_o jew_n disperse_v over_o the_o empire_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v they_o be_v in_o any_o city_n so_o numerous_a as_o to_o bear_v any_o near_a proportion_n to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o place_n of_o old_a indeed_o in_o alexandria_n and_o some_o city_n of_o syria_n they_o be_v exceed_o numerous_a but_o then_o they_o be_v original_a inhabitant_n of_o those_o place_n and_o not_o stranger_n but_o in_o the_o four_o century_n of_o which_o we_o be_v now_o speak_v though_o every_o where_o almost_o there_o be_v some_o yet_o be_v there_o not_o very_o many_o in_o any_o one_o place_n except_v their_o own_o country_n we_o may_v judge_v by_o what_o we_o see_v now_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o great_a town_n of_o trade_n in_o europe_n where_o there_o be_v not_o some_o jew_n and_o in_o many_o country_n they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v numerous_a but_o still_o they_o bear_v no_o proportion_n to_o the_o native_n and_o i_o do_v not_o know_v whether_o there_o be_v any_o city_n in_o europe_n where_o they_o be_v so_o many_o in_o proportion_n to_o the_o other_o people_n as_o one_o to_o a_o hundred_o and_o this_o be_v so_o small_a a_o matter_n that_o it_o do_v not_o deserve_v any_o consideration_n it_o be_v as_o if_o in_o the_o computation_n of_o what_o water_n a_o river_n may_v discharge_v in_o a_o day_n a_o man_n shall_v be_v scrupulous_a to_o make_v allowance_n for_o the_o drink_n of_o a_o few_o horse_n when_o he_o have_v bring_v christian_n very_o low_a by_o great_a favour_n and_o partiality_n towards_o heathen_n and_o jew_n he_o think_v fit_a at_o last_o to_o divide_v this_o small_a party_n and_o with_o a_o true_a spirit_n of_o a_o dissenter_n to_o draw_v away_o as_o many_o as_o he_o can_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o bishop_n to_o this_o purpose_n therefore_o he_o tell_v 81._o tell_v prim._n ep_v p._n 81._o we_o there_o remain_v another_o sort_n of_o people_n inhabitant_n of_o these_o city_n to_o be_v take_v notice_n of_o who_o number_n make_v the_o christian_a assembly_n thin_a and_o the_o bishop_n flock_n less_o numerous_a such_o as_o be_v call_v heretic_n or_o sectary_n these_o be_v many_o and_o have_v bishop_n of_o their_o own_o so_o that_o there_o be_v several_a bishopric_n in_o one_o city_n there_o be_v scarce_o a_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n in_o which_o the_o prediction_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o st._n paul_n that_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n be_v not_o sad_o accomplish_v yet_o it_o please_v the_o same_o providence_n that_o check_v the_o increase_n of_o noxious_a and_o venomous_a creature_n to_o put_v likewise_o some_o stint_n to_o the_o growth_n and_o spread_v of_o this_o evil_n and_o to_o lessen_v the_o mischief_n of_o these_o wolf_n in_o sheep_n clothing_n by_o not_o permit_v they_o to_o multiply_v into_o too_o great_a number_n so_o that_o st._n austin_n cred._n austin_n aug._n de_fw-fr util._n cred._n even_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o afric_n the_o most_o divide_a with_o sect_n of_o any_o christian_a country_n in_o that_o age_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o catholic_n christian_n be_v more_o than_o all_o the_o sectary_n put_v together_o and_o sozomen_n 32._o sozomen_n sozom._n l._n 2._o c._n 32._o observe_v that_o all_o other_o heretic_n but_o the_o novatian_o from_o the_o very_a beginning_n be_v but_o few_o the_o novatian_o therefore_o mr._n clerkson_n choose_v to_o insist_v on_o and_o from_o their_o number_n to_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v of_o the_o rest_n 82._o rest_n prim._n ep_v p._n 82._o for_o by_o the_o multitude_n of_o they_o we_o may_v conjecture_v what_o all_o the_o rest_n put_v together_o will_v amount_v to_o let_v we_o therefore_o try_v what_o deduction_n these_o may_v make_v from_o the_o diocese_n of_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n he_o tell_v we_o then_o that_o they_o be_v many_o from_o first_o to_o last_o and_o that_o they_o have_v a_o diocese_n in_o rome_n and_o alexandria_n and_o constantinople_n where_o it_o continue_v with_o public_a liberty_n long_o and_o to_o make_v short_a they_o have_v bishop_n and_o church_n in_o many_o other_o place_n but_o to_o come_v near_o and_o to_o make_v some_o guess_n of_o their_o number_n he_o tell_v we_o at_o constantinople_n their_o church_n be_v more_o confirm_v and_o enlarge_v under_o one_o chrysanthus_n their_o bishop_n and_o in_o rome_n innocent_n take_v many_o church_n from_o they_o and_o celestine_n deprive_v they_o of_o more_o and_o to_o conclude_v till_o that_o time_n they_o have_v mighty_o flourish_v at_o rome_n have_v many_o church_n and_o great_a multitude_n of_o people_n what_o have_v these_o novatian_o then_o many_o church_n in_o one_o city_n i_o have_v almost_o be_v tempt_v to_o think_v by_o mr._n clerkson_n former_a discourse_n that_o one_o church_n have_v be_v sufficient_a for_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o great_a city_n in_o the_o empire_n and_o yet_o it_o seem_v one_o single_a sect_n can_v not_o be_v content_a with_o one_o church_n but_o they_o must_v have_v many_o under_o one_o bishop_n well_o then_o these_o be_v dissenter_n and_o they_o may_v have_v what_o they_o please_v and_o yet_o we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n how_o hard_o he_o be_v towards_o catholic_n christian_n for_o these_o must_v be_v no_o more_o than_o may_v meet_v in_o one_o place_n even_o in_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n we_o expect_v no_o favour_n then_o but_o let_v we_o not_o be_v press_v to_o death_n while_o we_o be_v willing_a to_o plead_v there_o be_v he_o say_v in_o the_o four_o century_n several_a sect_n of_o these_o the_o novatian_o the_o most_o numerous_a these_o in_o constantius_n his_o time_n have_v 38._o have_v socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 38._o three_o church_n in_o constantinople_n under_o one_o bishop_n the_o catholic_n or_o establish_v christian_n before_o this_o time_n upon_o a_o very_a low_a computation_n be_v twenty_o time_n as_o many_o and_o these_o with_o all_o the_o country_n parish_n of_o that_o diocese_n have_v but_o one_o bishop_n yet_o they_o be_v to_o have_v but_o one_o church_n
if_o our_o author_n may_v have_v his_o way_n rome_n and_o constantinople_n be_v a_o great_a way_n off_o and_o the_o time_n of_o which_o our_o author_n speak_v be_v very_o remote_a from_o we_o but_o let_v we_o try_v whether_o we_o may_v not_o comprehend_v this_o matter_n without_o travel_n or_o much_o read_n and_o make_v london_n the_o scene_n of_o our_o discourse_n for_o as_o great_a and_o populous_a as_o it_o be_v it_o may_v receive_v no_o disparagement_n by_o the_o comparison_n with_o old_a or_o new_a rome_n now_o in_o london_n there_o be_v a_o sect_n or_o two_o ambitious_a of_o be_v think_v to_o have_v some_o resemblance_n to_o the_o novatian_o and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v displease_v let_v they_o be_v more_o numerous_a instead_o of_o three_o church_n let_v they_o have_v ten_o meeting_n the_o other_o sect_n who_o can_v speak_v of_o number_n too_o may_v have_v their_o assembly_n as_o convenient_a as_o they_o please_v and_o not_o crush_v or_o hurt_v one_o another_o for_o want_n of_o room_n yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n will_v scarce_o be_v able_a to_o assemble_v his_o flock_n even_o of_o the_o city_n in_o any_o one_o church_n though_o paul_n be_v finish_v for_o if_o you_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v late_o on_o sunday_n morning_n go_v to_o st._n clement_n and_o there_o be_v no_o room_n go_v to_o st._n martin_n and_o its_o all_o full_a go_v to_o the_o abbey_n and_o you_o can_v scarce_o come_v within_o hear_v and_o at_o st._n gile_n you_o will_v be_v throng_v and_o if_o you_o walk_v to_o st._n andrews_n you_o may_v have_v no_o seat_n i_o may_v add_v near_o a_o hundred_o congregation_n more_o within_o the_o line_n of_o which_o many_o be_v as_o considerable_a as_o these_o i_o mention_v and_o all_o this_o in_o a_o city_n which_o be_v much_o inferior_a for_o number_n of_o people_n to_o those_o old_a one_o of_o which_o our_o author_n speak_v you_o may_v see_v therefore_o by_o this_o how_o much_o thin_a a_o multitude_n of_o sect_n and_o some_o of_o they_o numerous_a will_v render_v the_o bishop_n flock_n in_o such_o great_a city_n as_o we_o have_v be_v speak_v of_o and_o what_o mighty_a abatement_n be_v to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o number_n of_o the_o church_n christian_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o three_o conventicle_n of_o the_o novatian_o in_o a_o city_n that_o want_v not_o much_o of_o a_o million_o of_o soul_n but_o we_o have_v make_v no_o allowance_n for_o heathen_a which_o in_o the_o four_o century_n be_v numerous_a and_o now_o be_v grow_v rare_a but_o the_o sluggish_a and_o irreligious_a brute_n in_o our_o great_a city_n may_v be_v reckon_v against_o they_o and_o our_o account_n remain_v as_o it_o be_v and_o i_o be_o afraid_a that_o about_o london_n there_o may_v be_v more_o of_o these_o than_o there_o be_v heathen_n in_o constantinople_n i_o need_v not_o show_v say_v our_o author_n 83._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 83._o how_o predominant_a arrianism_n be_v in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n ingemuit_fw-la totus_fw-la orbis_fw-la &_o arrianum_n se_fw-la esse_fw-la miratus_fw-la est_fw-la when_o it_o possess_v the_o whole_a orient_a have_v none_o to_o oppose_v it_o but_o athanasius_n and_o paulinus_n adu._n joh._n hierosol_n that_o the_o arrian_n party_n or_o faction_n be_v very_o great_a under_o constantius_n and_o valens_n be_v certain_a but_o that_o the_o sect_n be_v very_o numerous_a i_o find_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v i_o be_o sure_a the_o passage_n of_o st._n jerom_n which_o be_v much_o often_o cite_v than_o understand_v intend_v no_o such_o thing_n but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a for_o jerom_n l_o speak_v of_o the_o council_n of_o rimini_n endeavour_n to_o show_v that_o the_o bishop_n there_o be_v orthodox_n that_o they_o confirm_v the_o nicene_n faith_n that_o they_o condemn_v arrianism_n that_o they_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n consubstantial_a not_o because_o they_o condemn_v the_o sense_n of_o it_o but_o for_o accommodation_n and_o because_o it_o seem_v to_o give_v offence_n that_o they_o pronounce_v anathema_n on_o all_o those_o who_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v eternal_a god_n or_o affirm_v he_o to_o be_v make_v of_o nothing_o wherefore_o think_v they_o have_v do_v well_o and_o wise_o they_o return_v home_o in_o great_a hope_n that_o the_o east_n and_o west_n be_v now_o reconcile_v and_o that_o this_o small_a alteration_n have_v beget_v a_o eternal_a peace_n but_o when_o the_o arrian_n have_v obtain_v their_o point_n and_o have_v exclude_v the_o word_n substance_n out_o of_o the_o creed_n they_o begin_v to_o proclaim_v ferebantur_fw-la proclaim_v sine_fw-la conscientia_fw-la haeretici_fw-la ferebantur_fw-la their_o conquest_n and_o to_o triumph_v as_o if_o the_o nicene_n faith_n have_v be_v abolish_v then_o the_o bishop_n begin_v to_o perceive_v the_o trick_n so_o that_o the_o whole_a world_n wonder_v to_o see_v itself_o become_v arrian_n not_o that_o they_o be_v real_o so_o but_o only_o that_o they_o have_v be_v impose_v upon_o by_o fair_a pretence_n to_o give_v the_o arrian_n some_o advantage_n for_o which_o they_o be_v sensible_o grieve_v and_o therefore_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o lucif_n they_o usiae_fw-la nomen_fw-la quia_fw-la in_o scripture_n aiebant_fw-la non_fw-la invenitur_fw-la &_o multos_fw-la simpliciores_fw-la novitate_fw-la sva_fw-la scandalizat_fw-la placuit_fw-la auferri_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la curae_fw-la episcopis_fw-la de_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la cum_fw-la sensus_fw-la esset_fw-la in_o tuto_fw-la hieron_n adv_fw-la lucif_n find_v their_o mistake_n some_o immediate_o join_v communion_n with_o the_o confessor_n in_o banishment_n the_o rest_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v opportunity_n renounce_v all_o communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n and_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n not_o as_o heretic_n return_v for_o they_o never_o have_v be_v heretic_n but_o as_o person_n deceive_v by_o fair_a word_n to_o join_v with_o those_o who_o be_v indeed_o secret_o heretic_n but_o their_o expression_n lucif_n expression_n sonabant_fw-la verba_fw-la pletatem_fw-la nemo_fw-la venenum_fw-la insertum_fw-la putabat_fw-la hieron_n adv_fw-la lucif_n bear_v a_o fair_a construction_n and_o their_o word_n be_v catholic_n and_o it_o seem_v id._n seem_v cur_n damnassent_v eos_fw-la qui_fw-la arriani_n non_fw-la erant_fw-la id._n unreasonable_a they_o shall_v be_v condemn_v for_o arrian_n who_o have_v never_o be_v so_o this_o passage_n then_o of_o jerom_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o mr._n clerkson_n direct_o against_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o author_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o more_o to_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o present_a question_n or_o any_o way_n serviceable_a to_o our_o author_n purpose_n which_o be_v to_o render_v the_o flock_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o time_n thin_a for_o the_o flock_n of_o these_o bishop_n do_v all_o adhere_v to_o they_o and_o when_o lucif_n when_o cum_fw-la omnes_fw-la populi_fw-la sarcedote_n suos_fw-la diligentes_fw-la paene_fw-la ad_fw-la lapides_fw-la &_o interemptionem_fw-la deponentium_fw-la eos_fw-la convaluerint_fw-la hieron_n adv_fw-la lucif_n some_o person_n of_o more_o zeal_n than_o discretion_n attempt_v to_o depose_v some_o of_o they_o and_o ordain_v other_o in_o their_o place_n their_o people_n be_v so_o concern_v that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o stone_n those_o obtruder_n the_o same_o answer_n be_v to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o other_o passage_n of_o st._n jerom_n that_o in_o the_o east_n there_o be_v but_o athanasius_n and_o paulinus_n to_o oppose_v the_o arrian_n not_o that_o all_o the_o rest_n or_o the_o great_a number_n be_v heretic_n or_o will_v not_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o arrius_n but_o those_o two_o only_o do_v in_o a_o eminent_a manner_n oppose_v the_o design_n of_o these_o heretic_n which_o be_v cover_v over_o with_o specious_a pretence_n of_o peace_n and_o sincerity_n of_o belief_n so_o as_o to_o impose_v in_o a_o manner_n upon_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o the_o number_n of_o that_o sect_n be_v no_o more_o to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o party_n they_o once_o prevail_v upon_o to_o join_v with_o they_o against_o a_o few_o bishop_n who_o they_o traduce_v as_o author_n of_o all_o those_o public_a distraction_n which_o they_o themselves_o have_v cause_v and_o pretend_v that_o the_o faith_n be_v not_o concern_v than_o the_o number_n of_o our_o sect_n be_v to_o be_v estimate_v from_o the_o interest_n which_o upon_o some_o occasion_n they_o can_v make_v against_o some_o great_a man_n who_o seem_v to_o stand_v most_o in_o their_o way_n and_o to_o give_v the_o great_a obstruction_n to_o their_o design_n in_o all_o constantine_n time_n the_o arrian_n have_v not_o separate_v congregation_n except_v what_o the_o author_n of_o the_o sect_n make_v for_o a_o little_a while_n in_o alexandria_n and_o when_o bishop_n and_o whole_a province_n take_v party_n in_o this_o quarrel_n the_o separation_n be_v of_o one_o city_n or_o province_n from_o another_o and_o not_o of_o the_o people_n from_o their_o respective_a bishop_n and_o in_o a_o little_a time_n all_o
acquiesce_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o nice_a 26._o nice_a socr._n l._n 1._o c._n 26._o which_o receive_v no_o open_a contradiction_n during_o the_o reign_n of_o constantine_n 57_o constantine_n euseb_n vit_fw-mi const_n l._n 3._o c._n 57_o and_o prodigious_a accession_n be_v make_v to_o the_o church_n under_o that_o reign_n the_o city_n must_v be_v throng_v with_o christian_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o bishop_n even_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o town_n where_o they_o reside_v must_v be_v diocesan_n all_o sect_n be_v very_o inconsiderable_a in_o his_o time_n be_v suppress_v by_o public_a authority_n and_o all_o their_o meeting_n forbid_v by_o the_o emperor_n edict_n 66._o edict_n euseb_n vit_fw-mi const_n l._n 3._o c._n 63_o 64_o 65_o 66._o which_o have_v that_o effect_n that_o the_o great_a part_n join_v themselves_o sincere_o to_o the_o church_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o appearance_n so_o that_o there_o remain_v no_o meeting_n of_o dissent_v christian_n in_o all_o the_o empire_n and_o even_o the_o novatian_o be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o same_o law_n under_o the_o next_o reign_v the_o arrian_n cover_v themselves_o with_o a_o pretence_n of_o own_v no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o that_o already_o establish_v in_o the_o church_n and_o lay_v all_o the_o blame_n upon_o athanasius_n as_o a_o man_n of_o a_o restless_a and_o turbulent_a spirit_n that_o will_v not_o suffer_v the_o church_n to_o be_v in_o peace_n nor_o be_v there_o many_o separate_a congregation_n upon_o this_o account_n the_o people_n general_o follow_v the_o bishop_n set_v over_o they_o under_o a_o persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v sound_a as_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o for_o those_o bishop_n who_o be_v displace_v care_n be_v take_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v think_v to_o suffer_v not_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o of_o some_o other_o high_a misdemeanour_n in_o some_o few_o of_o the_o great_a city_n there_o be_v tumult_n on_o this_o occasion_n but_o in_o general_a there_o be_v a_o submission_n to_o public_a order_n and_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n be_v carry_v away_o not_o by_o the_o doctrine_n but_o the_o dissimulation_n of_o the_o arrian_n yet_o still_o the_o episcopal_a diocese_n remain_v as_o they_o be_v without_o any_o considerable_a separation_n when_o athanasius_n die_v it_o be_v say_v there_o be_v but_o few_o arrian_n in_o 22._o in_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 4._o c._n 22._o alexandria_n in_o 〈◊〉_d in_o basil_n ep_v 72._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d basil_n time_n there_o be_v but_o very_o few_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o whole_a infect_v with_o that_o disease_n at_o rome_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o and_o 2._o and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o in_o the_o west_n they_o be_v hardly_o know_v otherwise_o than_o by_o report_n till_o the_o goth_n have_v plant_v themselves_o in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o empire_n so_o that_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n be_v not_o reduce_v to_o a_o single_a congregation_n by_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o arrian_n their_o city_n only_o be_v suppose_v to_o make_v up_o their_o whole_a diocese_n our_o author_n be_v liberal_a and_o will_v not_o insist_v upon_o the_o prevail_a of_o the_o donatist_n and_o therefore_o i_o need_v not_o say_v that_o the_o case_n of_o afric_n be_v singular_a be_v tear_v into_o very_o small_a diocese_n and_o yet_o even_o in_o that_o there_o be_v some_o large_a some_o free_a from_o the_o donatist_n and_o have_v no_o other_o bishop_n but_o that_o of_o the_o establish_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o several_a answer_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o carthage_n nor_o will_v he_o tell_v we_o how_o the_o macedonian_n do_v abound_v in_o many_o place_n nor_o will_v he_o so_o much_o as_o name_v the_o other_o numerous_a sect_n which_o have_v their_o distinct_a church_n and_o bishop_n so_o that_o there_o be_v sometime_o four_o or_o five_o of_o several_a persuasion_n seat_v in_o that_o city_n i_o have_v i_o think_v make_v allowance_n enough_o for_o they_o all_o and_o yet_o in_o great_a city_n leave_v more_o church_n for_o the_o bishop_n than_o all_o the_o conventicle_n of_o sectary_n thrice_o tell_v will_v amount_v to_o now_o to_o sum_n up_o this_o evidence_n and_o 84._o and_o prim._n ep_v p._n 84._o to_o draw_v this_o discourse_n into_o a_o issue_n suppose_v we_o a_o city_n forty_o furlong_n in_o compass_n than_o which_o there_o be_v few_o big_a let_v we_o allow_v half_a to_o heathen_n and_o a_o three_o or_o four_o to_o jew_n and_o novatian_o and_o the_o proportion_n leave_v christian_n will_v not_o exceed_v the_o dimension_n of_o a_o small_a town_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o some_o city_n of_o more_o than_o forty_o furlong_n that_o be_v whole_o christian_n i_o have_v mention_v other_o exceed_o great_a in_o which_o there_o be_v but_o very_o few_o heathen_a i_o have_v instance_a in_o some_o that_o have_v no_o dissenter_n or_o sectary_n and_o show_v in_o general_n that_o all_o the_o world_n over_o those_o who_o be_v without_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n of_o all_o sect_n be_v nothing_o so_o considerable_a as_o our_o author_n will_v represent_v they_o and_o here_o we_o may_v conclude_v this_o chapter_n but_o for_o the_o particular_n which_o follow_v and_o require_v further_a examination_n when_o our_o author_n have_v make_v the_o large_a allowance_n for_o heathen_n and_o jew_n and_o sectary_n as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o to_o poll_n for_o the_o dissenter_n and_o leave_v the_o catholic_n christian_n so_o destitute_a that_o there_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v they_o in_o the_o great_a city_n he_o think_v 84._o think_v prim._n ep_v p._n 84._o it_o may_v be_v more_o satisfactory_a yet_o to_o make_v this_o evident_a in_o some_o particular_a city_n and_o those_o of_o the_o great_a nay_o some_o of_o the_o great_a berytus_n he_o say_v be_v a_o eminent_a city_n and_o yet_o it_o have_v but_o one_o church_n in_o julian_n be_v time_n which_o be_v then_o burn_v by_o magnus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o berytus_n theod._n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o if_o our_o author_n have_v be_v a_o little_a better_o verse_v in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n he_o can_v not_o have_v think_v this_o instance_n or_o his_o deduction_n from_o it_o very_o satisfactory_a for_o the_o church_n in_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n do_v not_o denote_v the_o only_a church_n or_o signify_v to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o any_o other_o but_o express_v only_o the_o cathedral_n or_o bishop_n church_n and_o that_o this_o may_v be_v clear_a beyond_o all_o cavil_n i_o will_v offer_v some_o passage_n where_o the_o same_o expression_n be_v use_v in_o city_n know_v to_o have_v a_o great_a number_n of_o church_n alexandria_n be_v allow_v by_o all_o to_o have_v have_v many_o church_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o four_o century_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o athanasius_n 2._o athanasius_n athan._n apol._n 2._o and_o epiphanius_n 69._o epiphanius_n epiph._n haer._n 69._o set_v it_o beyond_o contradiction_n yet_o gregory_n the_o arrian_n bishop_n be_v say_v 14._o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 14._o to_o be_v remove_v because_o he_o have_v become_v odious_a to_o the_o people_n for_o the_o burn_a of_o the_o church_n he_o say_v not_o one_o of_o the_o church_n will_v our_o author_n reason_n but_o the_o church_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o there_o be_v many_o other_o church_n in_o that_o city_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n when_o athanasius_n be_v force_v to_o fly_v from_o alexandria_n the_o soldier_n be_v say_v 11._o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d athan._n apol_n 2._o p._n 717._o socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o to_o encompass_v the_o church_n without_o any_o distinction_n which_o it_o be_v and_o the_o bishop_n say_v to_o be_v drive_v out_o of_o the_o church_n intend_v only_o the_o principal_a church_n and_o that_o which_o be_v call_v so_o by_o way_n of_o eminence_n which_o be_v sometime_o style_v the_o great_a church_n so_o theodorus_n lector_fw-la val._n lector_fw-la theod._n lect._n l._n 1._o p._n 553._o ed._n val._n speak_v of_o gennadius_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n take_v notice_n that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o appropriate_v to_o the_o city_n parish_n all_o the_o oblation_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v in_o they_o whereas_o before_o the_o great_a church_n carry_v away_o all_o and_o nicephorus_n 22._o nicephorus_n niceph._n h_o e._n l._n 15._o c._n 22._o speak_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n call_v it_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n likewise_o be_v epiphanius_n 69._o epiphanius_n epiph._n haer._n 69._o understand_v by_o valesius_fw-la 162._o valesius_fw-la h._n vale_n in_o theodor._n lect._n p._n 162._o when_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o
alexandria_n and_o thus_o perhaps_o may_v cornelius_n his_o expression_n in_o eusebius_n be_v best_a understand_v that_o in_o the_o catholic_n church_n there_o ought_v to_o be_v but_o one_o bishop_n for_o although_o in_o one_o city_n there_o may_v be_v many_o parish-church_n appoint_v for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o several_a quarter_n where_o they_o be_v place_v yet_o be_v there_o but_o one_o common_a or_o general_a or_o catholic_n church_n in_o one_o city_n rome_n have_v many_o church_n when_o the_o schism_n of_o vrsicinus_n happen_v to_o divide_v it_o and_o long_o before_o that_o time_n there_o be_v no_o less_o than_o forty_o yet_o socrates_n 29._o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 4._o c._n 29._o speak_v of_o the_o ordination_n of_o vrsicinus_n observe_v that_o it_o be_v not_o do_v in_o the_o church_n but_o in_o a_o private_a place_n of_o the_o church_n call_v sicine_n or_o sicininus_fw-la 3._o sicininus_fw-la ammian_n marcell_n l._n 27._o c._n 3._o that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o sicininus_fw-la which_o be_v but_o a_o obscure_a place_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o great_a church_n in_o constantinople_n there_o be_v many_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n yet_o in_o constantius_n his_o time_n socrates_n 16._o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 2._o 16._o speak_v of_o the_o emperor_n order_n to_o drive_v paul_n out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o place_n and_o to_o put_v macedonius_n into_o possession_n of_o it_o wherefore_o ibid._n wherefore_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n ibid._n after_o paul_n be_v send_v to_o banishment_n the_o perfect_a take_v macedonius_n and_o bring_v he_o towards_o the_o church_n and_o when_o they_o come_v near_o to_o the_o church_n and_o the_o people_n strive_v to_o get_v into_o the_o church_n though_o all_o the_o while_o it_o be_v notorious_a 12._o notorious_a socr._n l._n 2._o c._n 12._o there_o be_v many_o church_n in_o the_o place_n though_o this_o be_v then_o the_o cathedral_n or_o if_o our_o author_n may_v fancy_v this_o city_n still_o to_o have_v but_o one_o church_n yet_o we_o have_v the_o same_o language_n long_o after_o even_o in_o chrysostom_n time_n who_o upon_o his_o return_n be_v say_v innocent_n say_v socr._n l._n 6._o c._n 16._o pallad_n vit._n chrys_n p._n 15_o 16_o 24_o 25._o chrys_n ep._n ad_fw-la innocent_n to_o be_v bring_v by_o the_o people_n to_o the_o church_n and_o by_o this_o time_n sure_o there_o must_v be_v many_o church_n in_o that_o city_n or_o some_o unkown_a destruction_n must_v have_v befall_v those_o magnificent_a house_n of_o god_n in_o that_o place_n so_o much_o celebrate_v by_o some_o of_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n so_o the_o inference_n our_o author_n draw_v from_o this_o expression_n the_o church_n of_o berytus_n to_o the_o exclusion_n of_o all_o other_o church_n prove_v a_o mistake_n but_o he_o proceed_v to_o observe_v far_o 85._o far_o prim._n ep._n p._n 85._o that_o tyre_n be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o illustrious_a city_n of_o the_o east_n yet_o paulinus_n bishop_n there_o in_o constantine_n time_n have_v but_o so_o many_o under_o his_o episcopal_a charge_n 285._o charge_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 276._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d p._n 285._o as_o he_o can_v take_v a_o personal_a notice_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o accurate_o examine_v the_o inward_a state_n of_o every_o one_o acquaint_v himself_o thorough_o with_o the_o condition_n of_o all_o those_o soul_n that_o be_v commit_v to_o he_o and_o that_o you_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o all_o this_o be_v just_a and_o exact_a without_o hyperbole_n he_o quote_v his_o author_n as_o the_o panegyrist_n in_o eusebius_n inform_v we_o l._n 10._o c._n 4._o it_o be_v usual_a in_o panegyric_n to_o raise_v thing_n beyond_o nature_n and_o the_o strictness_n of_o truth_n and_o it_o be_v allow_v as_o long_o as_o the_o proportion_n and_o resemblance_n of_o the_o thing_n so_o represent_v be_v preserve_v what_o therefore_o if_o eusebius_n by_o all_o this_o citation_n shall_v intend_v only_o to_o commend_v the_o diligence_n and_o the_o penetration_n of_o that_o bishop_n of_o tyre_n that_o he_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o discern_a spirit_n and_o of_o judge_v aright_o who_o repentance_n be_v sincere_a and_o therefore_o to_o be_v receive_v into_o communion_n who_o conversion_n be_v unfeigned_a and_o therefore_o to_o be_v admit_v to_o baptism_n who_o be_v best_a qualify_v for_o the_o respective_a office_n of_o the_o church_n if_o he_o shall_v mean_v no_o more_o by_o these_o high_a expression_n he_o will_v not_o exceed_v much_o the_o allowance_n give_v to_o such_o kind_n of_o discourse_n and_o i_o think_v they_o be_v more_o to_o blame_v that_o will_v force_v a_o compliment_n into_o a_o syllogism_n it_o be_v scarce_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o say_v so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o illustration_n of_o this_o passage_n only_o to_o show_v at_o last_o to_o how_o little_a purpose_n it_o be_v allege_v yet_o since_o this_o instance_n of_o tyre_n come_v in_o among_o the_o rest_n because_o he_o esteem_v it_o more_o satisfactory_a than_o ordinary_a i_o m_o st_o beg_v the_o reader_n be_v patience_n to_o explain_v the_o matter_n eusebius_n 376._o eusebius_n euseb_n e._n h._n l._n 10._o c._n 4._o p._n 376._o in_o his_o panegyric_n deliver_v at_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o tyre_n commend_v not_o only_o the_o fabric_n but_o the_o spiritual_a church_n or_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o city_n and_o this_o temple_n say_v the_o panegyrist_n be_v very_o great_a indeed_o and_o worthy_a of_o god_n the_o inside_n of_o this_o temple_n who_o can_v describe_v who_o can_v look_v into_o it_o but_o the_o great_a high_a priest_n who_o alone_o have_v authority_n to_o enter_v into_o this_o holy_a of_o holies_n and_o to_o search_v the_o secret_n of_o the_o heart_n and_o happy_o it_o may_v be_v give_v to_o one_o more_o in_o the_o second_o place_n and_o by_o way_n of_o substitute_n that_o be_v to_o he_o who_o sit_v there_o the_o leader_n of_o this_o noble_a army_n to_o he_o therefore_o as_o a_o high_a priest_n after_o christ_n it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o look_v into_o the_o most_o secret_a part_n of_o your_o soul_n or_o as_o mr._n clerkson_n translate_v to_o take_v a_o personal_a notice_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o to_o examine_v the_o inward_a state_n of_o every_o one_o now_o eusebius_n say_v not_o the_o least_o word_n that_o paulinus_n have_v but_o so_o many_o under_o his_o charge_n that_o he_o can_v look_v into_o all_o their_o soul_n but_o 385._o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n l._n 10._o c._n 4._o p._n 385._o that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o do_v so_o to_o be_v a_o inspector_n or_o bishop_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o this_o to_o be_v understand_v with_o respect_n to_o the_o bishop_n office_n who_o receive_v the_o public_a confession_n in_o the_o church_n and_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o profession_n as_o far_o as_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n be_v concern_v and_o all_o this_o may_v be_v say_v although_o he_o have_v have_v forty_o parish-church_n within_o his_o city_n valesius_fw-la mention_n a_o marginal_a note_n of_o some_o greek_a set_v against_o this_o place_n in_o a_o manuscript_n that_o he_o have_v see_v detest_a it_o as_o a_o wicked_a and_o blasphemous_a passage_n he_o think_v eusebius_n have_v speak_v those_o thing_n of_o christ_n which_o he_o direct_v to_o the_o bishop_n but_o though_o there_o be_v some_o expression_n below_o the_o majesty_n of_o christ_n yet_o be_v there_o other_o that_o be_v something_o too_o high_a to_o be_v offer_v to_o man_n the_o other_o passage_n out_o of_o the_o same_o oration_n that_o speak_v of_o paulinus_n as_o thorough_o acquaint_v himself_o with_o all_o those_o soul_n commit_v to_o he_o will_v appear_v as_o little_a to_o our_o author_n purpose_n if_o we_o do_v but_o observe_v what_o go_v before_o it_o for_o eusebius_n speak_v to_o those_o who_o have_v defile_v their_o conscience_n in_o the_o persecution_n by_o comply_v with_o the_o wicked_a decree_n of_o the_o persecutor_n and_o you_o say_v he_o who_o conscience_n a_o little_a while_n ago_o be_v pollute_v and_o overwhelm_v by_o profane_a command_n have_v your_o mind_n now_o cleanse_v by_o the_o terror_n of_o god_n law_n and_o be_v by_o he_o commit_v to_o the_o bishop_n who_o as_o he_o be_v otherwise_o of_o excellent_a judgement_n so_o have_v he_o a_o singular_a sagacity_n in_o judge_v of_o the_o thought_n of_o soul_n these_o word_n than_o be_v direct_v to_o such_o as_o have_v fall_v in_o the_o late_a persecution_n and_o be_v now_o in_o the_o state_n of_o penitent_n or_o have_v late_o be_v so_o and_o it_o be_v with_o respect_n to_o they_o that_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v commend_v that_o he_o can_v see_v into_o the_o very_a secret_a of_o their_o heart_n
and_o distinguish_v between_o the_o hypocrite_n and_o the_o sincere_a and_o paulinus_n his_o case_n be_v very_o singular_a if_o his_o whole_a church_n consist_v of_o none_o but_o penitent_n it_o must_v be_v thin_a indeed_o for_o these_o be_v scarce_o reckon_v within_o the_o church_n so_o little_a to_o the_o purpose_n be_v this_o satisfactory_a instance_n and_o so_o far_o it_o be_v from_o prove_v that_o for_o which_o it_o be_v produce_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o tyre_n have_v but_o so_o many_o under_o his_o charge_n as_o he_o can_v take_v personal_a notice_n of_o their_o soul_n 16._o soul_n prim._n ep_v p._n 85_o 16._o synnada_n be_v the_o next_o instance_n where_o our_o author_n fancy_n that_o all_o the_o people_n be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o church_n will_v contain_v which_o he_o thus_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v agapitus_n the_o macedonian_a bishop_n on_o a_o sudden_a turn_n orthodox_n and_o call_v together_o the_o people_n under_o he_o persuade_v they_o to_o it_o this_o do_v with_o a_o great_a multitude_n 3._o multitude_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 7._o c._n 3._o yea_o with_o all_o the_o people_n he_o hasten_v into_o the_o church_n but_o with_o what_o people_n of_o the_o city_n socrates_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n nor_o can_v they_o be_v aware_a of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o macedonian_a meeting_n the_o people_n then_o that_o go_v with_o he_o be_v no_o other_o than_o those_o who_o be_v with_o he_o who_o he_o persuade_v to_o receive_v the_o true_a faith_n for_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o have_v do_v persuade_v they_o immediate_o he_o go_v out_o and_o it_o seem_v his_o persuasion_n be_v so_o effectual_a that_o a_o great_a multitude_n or_o rather_o the_o whole_a people_n go_v with_o he_o towards_o the_o church_n this_o be_v what_o socrates_n say_v and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o rational_a way_n of_o understand_v he_o but_o though_o he_o shall_v mean_v all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o town_n or_o all_o the_o christian_n yet_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o one_o church_n can_v contain_v they_o but_o that_o this_o bishop_n go_v with_o they_o towards_o the_o church_n whether_o they_o can_v all_o get_v in_o or_o join_v with_o he_o be_v still_o uncertain_a for_o any_o thing_n that_o author_n say_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v though_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v affirm_v express_o of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n yet_o can_v it_o be_v understand_v no_o otherwise_o than_o such_o expression_n general_o be_v only_o for_o a_o great_a and_o unusual_a concourse_n and_o after_o all_o this_o bishop_n be_v a_o diocesan_n for_o he_o have_v many_o church_n belong_v to_o he_o as_o be_v note_v by_o socrates_n 3._o socrates_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 7._o c._n 3._o in_o the_o same_o place_n x_o cyzicus_n follow_v as_o great_a a_o city_n say_v our_o author_n as_o any_o in_o asia_n for_o which_o he_o quote_v strabo_n and_o florus_n to_o which_o i_o will_v add_v that_o it_o be_v no_o less_o considerable_a under_o constantius_n for_o gotofred_n old_a geographer_n gotofr_n geographer_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d geogr._n vet._n gotofr_n say_v that_o for_o its_o greatness_n and_o situation_n it_o surpass_v all_o praise_n now_o it_o can_v but_o grieve_v one_o to_o think_v that_o such_o a_o noble_a city_n shall_v be_v so_o disaffect_v to_o the_o christian_a religion_n that_o after_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o four_o century_n it_o shall_v seem_v to_o our_o author_n 87._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 87._o that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o this_o city_n be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n to_o hear_v the_o recantation_n of_o eleusius_n this_o be_v sad_a indeed_o but_o since_o our_o author_n be_v apt_a to_o diminish_v christian_n sometime_o without_o reason_n let_v we_o examine_v this_o matter_n a_o little_a far_o for_o possible_o this_o may_v be_v no_o true_a than_o the_o rest_n this_o eleusius_n he_o say_v be_v fright_v into_o a_o subscription_n to_o arrianism_n declare_v before_o they_o all_o the_o force_n that_o be_v put_v upon_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d coram_fw-la universo_fw-it populo_fw-la in_o the_o hear_n of_o all_o the_o people_n socr._n l._n 4._o c._n 16._o but_o this_o expression_n though_o translate_v into_o seventy_o language_n will_v never_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o cyzicus_n be_v present_a at_o this_o recantation_n or_o that_o they_o can_v all_o meet_v in_o one_o church_n such_o phrase_n as_o these_o all_o the_o people_n all_o the_o multitude_n be_v to_o be_v always_o limit_v by_o the_o place_n and_o other_o circumstance_n express_v or_o suppose_v in_o the_o discourse_n when_o our_o saviour_n speak_v in_o the_o temple_n 19.48_o temple_n luke_n 19.48_o all_o the_o people_n be_v say_v to_o be_v 86._o be_v prim._n ep_v p._n 86._o very_o attentive_a and_o to_o hang_v upon_o he_o not_o all_o the_o people_n of_o jerusalem_n sure_o but_o only_o the_o people_n there_o present_a so_o the_o woman_n who_o with_o a_o religious_a confidence_n touch_v the_o hem_n of_o our_o saviour_n garment_n be_v say_v to_o declare_v to_o he_o before_o 8.47_o before_o luke_n 8.47_o all_o the_o people_n how_o she_o be_v heal_v when_o boniface_n be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v say_v 13._o say_v acclamatione_fw-la totius_fw-la populi_fw-la asseruimus_fw-la baron_fw-fr an._n 419._o n._n 13._o to_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o acclamation_n of_o the_o whole_a people_n it_o be_v now_o in_o the_o five_o century_n and_o the_o roman_a christian_n too_o many_o to_o be_v any_o long_o suspect_v for_o a_o congregational_a diocese_n when_o the_o people_n cry_v anathema_n upon_o nestorius_n in_o the_o church_n of_o mocius_n in_o constantinople_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v ephes_n do_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ep._n ad_fw-la orthod_n ap_fw-mi conc._n ephes_n by_o the_o unite_a voice_n of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n and_o when_o 〈◊〉_d when_o ep._n syn._n c._n p._n ad_fw-la occid_n apud_fw-la theod._n l._n 5._o c._n 9_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nectarius_n be_v choose_v bishop_n of_o constantinople_n it_o be_v say_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o whole_a city_n and_o now_o sure_o one_o church_n can_v not_o hold_v all_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n of_o that_o city_n for_o at_o this_o time_n gregory_n nazianzen_n let_v the_o synod_n know_v that_o he_o have_v fill_v all_o the_o church_n of_o that_o city_n though_o now_o another_o reap_v the_o crop_n for_o which_o he_o have_v labour_v there_o may_v be_v instance_n of_o this_o kind_n produce_v without_o end_n for_o it_o be_v the_o common_a language_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o say_v a_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o all_o the_o people_n when_o only_o the_o people_n who_o be_v present_a be_v intend_v and_o not_o all_o the_o people_n of_o a_o city_n or_o of_o a_o country_n or_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o a_o place_n and_o it_o be_v seldom_o that_o any_o writer_n use_v any_o word_n of_o limitation_n upon_o these_o occasion_n as_o cyprian_a ep._n cyprian_a de_fw-fr plebis_fw-la quae_fw-la tunc_fw-la adfuit_fw-la suffragio_fw-la cypr._n ep._n in_o one_o place_n do_v speak_v of_o the_o election_n of_o cornelius_n that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n that_o be_v then_o present_a when_o this_o be_v understand_v of_o course_n and_o needs_o no_o word_n of_o caution_n to_o suggest_v it_o so_o that_o all_o the_o people_n which_o our_o author_n fancy_v to_o comprehend_v all_o the_o christian_n of_o cyzicus_n do_v signify_v but_o those_o who_o be_v present_a without_o any_o regard_n to_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n in_o that_o place_n and_o that_o they_o have_v more_o than_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o church_n we_o may_v reasonable_o infer_v from_o the_o multitude_n of_o church_n say_v to_o be_v in_o that_o city_n at_o the_o same_o time_n for_o when_o eleusius_n be_v put_v out_o and_o eunomius_n thrust_v into_o his_o place_n he_o be_v say_v 8._o say_v sozom._n l._n 6._o c._n 8._o to_o possess_v himself_o not_o of_o one_o church_n but_o of_o the_o church_n of_o cyzicus_n now_o to_o make_v it_o more_o likely_a that_o there_o be_v but_o few_o christian_n in_o this_o great_a city_n he_o take_v notice_n 86._o notice_n prim._n ep_v p._n 86._o that_o in_o julian_n be_v time_n the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o citizen_n be_v heathen_a the_o city_n send_v their_o deputy_n to_o he_o as_o about_o other_o affair_n so_o for_o the_o re-edify_n of_o their_o idol_n temple_n this_o act_n do_v not_o necessary_o conclude_v the_o heathen_a to_o be_v the_o major_a part_n few_o man_n in_o place_n and_o countenance_v by_o a_o emperor_n may_v procure_v such_o a_o petition_n as_o this_o in_o the_o name_n of_o a_o city_n when_o much_o the_o
great_a part_n may_v be_v far_o from_o like_v it_o we_o have_v instance_n of_o this_o nature_n fresh_a in_o our_o remembrance_n and_o perhaps_o too_o odious_a to_o be_v mention_v beside_o there_o be_v jew_n and_o novatian_o and_o arrian_n here_o and_o so_o there_o may_v be_v very_o great_a number_n and_o yet_o twenty_o church_n not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o receive_v the_o christian_n of_o the_o establish_a religion_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o all_o other_o city_n must_v be_v deliver_v up_o to_o the_o congregational_a pretension_n if_o constantinople_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o single_a church_n and_o mr._n clerkson_n fancy_v he_o have_v discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o this_o place_n by_o a_o passage_n in_o theodoret._n 88_o theodoret._n prim._n ep_v p._n 87_o 88_o in_o alexander_n be_v time_n the_o christian_n be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v all_o meet_v together_o so_o theodoret_n inform_v we_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d l._n 1._o c._n 14._o i._n e._n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n perform_v divine_a service_n with_o all_o the_o brethren_n what_o with_o all_o the_o brethren_n of_o constantinople_n no_o but_o with_o all_o the_o brethren_n there_o assemble_v the_o import_n of_o this_o expression_n have_v be_v consider_v already_o and_o this_o very_a passage_n have_v receive_v pref_o receive_v vindicat._n prim._n ch._n pref_o a_o answer_n long_o since_o but_o afterward_o he_o observe_v many_o fall_v off_o to_o arrianism_n the_o remainder_n make_v but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o little_a flock_n this_o do_v not_o prove_v but_o before_o this_o defection_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n flock_n be_v very_o great_a and_o require_v many_o church_n to_o assemble_v in_o and_o after_o this_o defection_n the_o arrian_n bishop_n who_o most_o of_o the_o christian_n follow_v have_v many_o church_n and_o congregation_n under_o he_o for_o the_o people_n in_o many_o place_n not_o understand_v the_o danger_n of_o the_o arrian_n communion_n do_v not_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o separate_v and_o therefore_o continue_v to_o repair_v to_o those_o church_n whither_o they_o use_v to_o resort_v before_o so_o that_o the_o episcopacy_n of_o the_o place_n remain_v diocesan_n though_o it_o happen_v to_o be_v place_v in_o wrong_a hand_n and_o soon_o after_o the_o people_n be_v recover_v from_o these_o wolf_n and_o deliver_v to_o faithful_a shepherd_n yet_o even_o then_o mr._n clerkson_n can_v find_v but_o one_o congregation_n there_o for_o in_o the_o time_n of_o theodosius_n junior_n it_o seem_v all_o amount_v to_o no_o more_o than_o one_o church_n can_v contain_v if_o socrates_n deceive_v we_o not_o l._n 4._o it_o shall_v be_v the_o seven_o c._n 23._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i._n e._n all_o the_o city_n become_v but_o one_o church_n it_o be_v a_o dangerous_a thing_n i_o see_v to_o venture_v upon_o a_o figure_n if_o man_n will_v be_v such_o rigid_a exactor_n of_o literal_a sense_n the_o historian_n may_v fancy_v he_o have_v speak_v eloquent_o when_o instead_o of_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a confluence_n of_o people_n to_o the_o church_n he_o choose_v to_o express_v himself_o thus_o that_o the_o whole_a city_n become_v one_o church_n but_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v take_v up_o short_a at_o his_o word_n and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o make_v it_o out_o that_o the_o great_a city_n then_o in_o the_o world_n be_v not_o literal_o one_o congregation_n he_o must_v pass_v for_o a_o extravagant_a writer_n and_o one_o that_o deceive_v we_o yet_o though_o it_o shall_v happen_v that_o all_o the_o city_n or_o all_o the_o christian_n have_v not_o be_v there_o to_o a_o man_n it_o be_v not_o socrates_n that_o deceive_v we_o while_o he_o use_v a_o form_n of_o speech_n general_o 88_o general_o prim._n ep_v p._n 88_o allow_v and_o understand_v but_o it_o be_v mr._n clerkson_n deceive_v himself_o when_o he_o snatch_v such_o expression_n as_o this_o against_o all_o fair_a way_n of_o understanding_n to_o give_v evidence_n to_o his_o notion_n those_o who_o give_v themselves_o up_o to_o serve_v a_o opinion_n be_v apt_a to_o catch_v at_o any_o thing_n they_o meet_v for_o a_o weapon_n to_o defend_v it_o and_o this_o tyrant_n be_v so_o absolute_a and_o the_o slave_n so_o fond_a that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n leave_v for_o examination_n or_o doubt_n nor_o can_v that_o pertinent_a question_n of_o the_o prophet_n 44.20_o prophet_n be_v 44.20_o be_v there_o not_o a_o lie_n in_o my_o right_a hand_n obtain_v any_o hear_n i_o have_v already_o show_v the_o greatness_n of_o this_o city_n which_o our_o author_n will_v reduce_v to_o a_o single_a congregation_n that_o even_o in_o constantine_n time_n it_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o great_a of_o the_o empire_n i_o have_v show_v that_o this_o be_v a_o christian_a city_n from_o the_o foundation_n and_o the_o people_n general_o devote_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o their_o founder_n that_o in_o constantine_n time_n sectary_n can_v not_o lessen_v the_o church_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o that_o place_n since_o they_o be_v not_o only_o discountenance_v in_o that_o reign_n but_o by_o the_o edict_n of_o the_o emperor_n oblige_v to_o go_v to_o church_n which_o they_o general_o do_v observe_v some_o sincere_o and_o the_o rest_n by_o outward_a compliance_n the_o arrian_n or_o eusebian_n have_v then_o no_o separate_a congregation_n they_o make_v then_o indeed_o a_o faction_n but_o not_o a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o labour_v with_o all_o their_o interest_n to_o restore_v those_o to_o communion_n who_o have_v be_v cast_v out_o by_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o those_o opinion_n i_o have_v show_v how_o that_o emperor_n build_v 6._o build_v theod._n h._n c._n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o very_o great_a and_o many_o church_n there_o because_o few_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o receive_v the_o multitude_n and_o now_o if_o so_o great_a a_o city_n so_o affect_v to_o christianity_n can_v make_v but_o one_o church_n after_o all_o what_o preacher_n 2._o preacher_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d arist_n polit._n l._n 2._o can_v there_o be_v find_v what_o voice_n sufficient_a for_o such_o a_o assembly_n what_o temple_n capacious_a enough_o to_o receive_v it_o s._n sophia_n be_v account_v the_o great_a of_o christian_a church_n that_o the_o sun_n ever_o shine_v on_o and_o i_o remember_v to_o have_v 37._o have_v sub_fw-la bajazethe_v triginta_fw-la sex_n millia_fw-la qui_fw-la illud_fw-la religionis_fw-la ergo_fw-la adirent_fw-la numerata_fw-la fuisse_fw-la ant._n maevanius_n author_n est_fw-la geo._n dousa_n de_fw-fr itin._n c._n p._n no._n p._n 37._o read_v that_o in_o bajazet_n reign_n six_o and_o thirty_o thousand_o turk_n visit_v that_o church_n in_o one_o day_n though_o i_o can_v scarce_o believe_v as_o vast_a as_o that_o church_n be_v that_o it_o can_v hold_v so_o many_o together_o yet_o even_o this_o number_n come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o christian_n in_o constantine_n time_n and_o much_o short_a yet_o of_o the_o christian_n of_o constantinople_n under_o the_o young_a theodosius_n when_o paganism_n be_v every_o where_o expire_a if_o not_o quite_o extinguish_v and_o the_o arrian_n and_o other_o sect_n reduce_v to_o the_o church_n and_o that_o city_n arrive_v to_o its_o high_a point_n of_o greatness_n yet_o even_o then_o our_o author_n can_v afford_v the_o bishop_n but_o one_o congregation_n 88_o congregation_n prim._n ep_v p._n 88_o at_o ancyra_n the_o chief_a city_n of_o gallatia_n our_o author_n take_v notice_n that_o there_o be_v many_o sect_n by_o which_o that_o church_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n all_o this_o may_v very_o well_o be_v and_o yet_o more_o than_o one_o congregation_n remain_v to_o the_o bishop_n the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v say_v of_o several_a of_o our_o city_n inferior_a perhaps_o to_o ancyra_n and_o yet_o those_o of_o the_o establish_a religion_n notwithstanding_o the_o variety_n of_o the_o sect_n require_v many_o church_n to_o assemble_v in_o 89._o in_o prim._n ep_v p._n 89._o the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o caesarea_n the_o chief_a city_n in_o mauritania_n the_o reason_n here_o be_v like_o the_o rest_n because_o st._n augustin_n desire_v a_o public_a conference_n with_o the_o donatist_n bishop_n of_o that_o place_n init_fw-la place_n suis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la civibus_fw-la praesentibus_fw-la possid_n vit_fw-mi aug._n c._n 14._o i._n e._n frequentissima_fw-la plebe_fw-la praesente_fw-la aug._n gest_n cum_fw-la emer_n init_fw-la all_o the_o citizen_n be_v present_a i_o wonder_v our_o author_n have_v not_o reduce_v all_o the_o world_n to_o a_o congregation_n since_o it_o be_v usual_a to_o say_v that_o a_o thing_n be_v do_v before_o all_o the_o world_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o like_a and_o therefore_o what_o need_v all_o our_o independent_a congregation_n since_o these_o expression_n may_v reduce_v the_o whole_a world_n to_o a_o single_a conventicle_n when_o our_o
author_n observe_v that_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a city_n in_o mauritania_n and_o may_v have_v take_v notice_n that_o it_o be_v 2._o be_v oppidumque_fw-la ibi_fw-la celeberrimum_fw-la caesarea_n plin._n l._n 5._o c._n 2._o a_o renown_a place_n from_o its_o first_o foundation_n by_o claudius_n and_o grow_v up_o to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a city_n in_o afric_n and_o have_v init_fw-la have_v in_o ecclesia_fw-la majori_fw-la congregat_fw-la aug._n gest_n cum_fw-la emer_n init_fw-la at_o this_o time_n many_o church_n of_o the_o catholic_n communion_n he_o shall_v have_v a_o little_a mistrust_v such_o a_o phrase_n as_o this_o that_o imply_v no_o more_o than_o that_o the_o conference_n shall_v be_v public_a and_o that_o all_o who_o will_v may_v be_v present_a at_o it_o tiberias_n and_o diocaesarea_n and_o sepphoris_n which_o our_o author_n mention_n because_o they_o have_v each_o but_o one_o church_n have_v be_v already_o consider_v they_o consist_v only_o of_o jew_n who_o will_v suffer_v no_o other_o nation_n or_o religion_n to_o mix_v with_o they_o 86._o they_o prim._n ep_v p._n 86._o at_o diocaesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n which_o in_o nazianzen_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n ep._n 49._o but_o nazianzen_n 49._o nazianzen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d greg._n ep._n 49._o say_v no_o such_o thing_n he_o use_v all_o the_o credit_n he_o have_v with_o olympius_n the_o governor_n of_o that_o province_n to_o spare_v this_o city_n which_o have_v extreme_o offend_v he_o and_o to_o that_o degree_n that_o he_o be_v resolve_v to_o disfranchise_v and_o destroy_v it_o and_o among_o other_o argument_n he_o make_v use_v of_o his_o own_o liberality_n towards_o that_o city_n have_v late_o build_v a_o church_n there_o and_o therefore_o pray_v that_o the_o temple_n he_o have_v so_o late_o erect_v there_o may_v not_o become_v a_o receptacle_n of_o wild_a beast_n but_o give_v not_o the_o least_o intimation_n that_o this_o be_v the_o only_a church_n in_o that_o great_a city_n 90._o city_n prim._n ep_v p._n 90._o at_o constantia_n the_o metropolis_n of_o cyprus_n and_o other_o city_n of_o that_o island_n there_o be_v no_o plurality_n of_o church_n for_o this_o he_o cite_v petavius_n who_o inference_n have_v be_v already_o examine_v and_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a add_v here_o to_o require_v further_a reply_n at_o neocaesaria_n and_o other_o city_n in_o those_o part_n but_o one_o church_n this_o he_o prove_v from_o the_o thirteen_o canon_n of_o neocaesarea_n that_o forbid_v a_o chorepiscopus_n to_o officiate_v in_o a_o city_n church_n from_o which_o petavius_n will_v infer_v the_o city_n have_v but_o one_o church_n but_o there_o may_v be_v a_o hundred_o church_n there_o for_o aught_o that_o expression_n may_v imply_v we_o be_v at_o last_o come_v to_o the_o end_n of_o this_o chapter_n in_o which_o our_o author_n have_v take_v all_o way_n to_o diminish_v the_o christian_n he_o have_v be_v very_o bountiful_a to_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n that_o the_o bishop_n flock_n may_v not_o increase_v beyond_o his_o new_a model_n but_o we_o must_v not_o wonder_v at_o his_o liberality_n towards_o these_o to_o the_o detriment_n of_o the_o bishop_n but_o rather_o than_o any_o city_n shall_v have_v more_o congregation_n than_o one_o of_o the_o same_o communion_n he_o give_v the_o rest_n to_o the_o devil_n and_o to_o that_o purpose_n he_o be_v beyond_o measure_n bountiful_a towards_o heathen_a and_o jew_n heighten_v their_o number_n as_o if_o he_o be_v of_o the_o faction_n especial_o in_o julian_n time_n have_v perhaps_o some_o secret_a respect_n for_o they_o because_o they_o general_o take_v the_o part_n of_o schismatic_n and_o heretic_n against_o the_o catholic_n establish_v church_n chap._n v._n the_o unjust_a steward_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v call_v to_o give_v up_o his_o account_n and_o then_o to_o be_v discharge_v provide_v for_o himself_o at_o the_o expense_n of_o his_o lord_n and_o cut_v off_o considerable_o from_o the_o sum_n owe_v to_o his_o master_n procure_v himself_o a_o retreat_n among_o the_o debtor_n yet_o in_o this_o unrighteous_a contrivance_n he_o observe_v some_o measure_n and_o reduce_v a_o hundred_o but_o to_o fourscore_o and_o fourscore_o to_o fifty_o but_o mr._n clerkson_n in_o the_o account_n he_o make_v of_o his_o master_n substance_n in_o ancient_a city_n be_v much_o more_o profuse_a towards_o the_o debtor_n and_o in_o some_o place_n of_o a_o hundred_o do_v not_o leave_v ten_o but_o in_o this_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o follow_v the_o injustice_n rather_o than_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o steward_n for_o when_o his_o defalcation_n come_v to_o be_v so_o unlikely_a and_o extravagant_a it_o be_v impossible_a the_o reckon_n shall_v pass_v have_v he_o insist_v only_o on_o lesser_a city_n that_o for_o three_o or_o four_o age_n the_o christian_n in_o they_o may_v not_o exceed_v one_o assembly_n the_o account_n may_v have_v pass_v without_o any_o suspicion_n though_o the_o evidence_n even_o for_o this_o be_v defective_a but_o when_o in_o the_o great_a city_n of_o the_o world_n he_o set_v down_o but_o one_o congregation_n to_o the_o account_n of_o christ_n and_o will_v not_o allow_v scarce_o five_o of_o a_o hundred_o to_o belong_v to_o our_o lord_n the_o misreckon_n be_v too_o manifest_a and_o do_v not_o carry_v so_o much_o as_o the_o appearance_n of_o truth_n the_o increase_n of_o christianity_n be_v represent_v by_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o age_n immediate_o succeed_v as_o wonderful_a and_o unexampled_a and_o consider_v the_o supernatural_a ability_n it_o please_v god_n to_o confer_v upon_o the_o first_o preacher_n it_o may_v be_v expect_v that_o their_o doctrine_n shall_v make_v a_o great_a progress_n than_o those_o that_o come_v recommend_v only_o by_o ordinary_a and_o human_a mean_n of_o persuasion_n yet_o if_o we_o take_v mr._n clerkson_n reckon_v of_o christian_n for_o the_o three_o first_o age_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o the_o growth_n of_o sect_n among_o ourselves_o within_o this_o last_o age_n we_o must_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v scarce_o a_o sect_n within_o our_o remembrance_n which_o have_v not_o proportionable_o to_o time_n and_o place_n make_v much_o better_a progress_n than_o the_o christian_a religion_n ever_o do_v since_o in_o the_o great_a city_n there_o be_v few_o sect_n but_o make_v several_a assembly_n for_o worship_n though_o the_o great_a city_n with_o we_o be_v much_o inferior_a to_o the_o great_a in_o ancient_a time_n and_o if_o the_o quaker_n a_o sect_n scarce_o forty_o year_n stand_v in_o the_o world_n be_v yet_o grow_v so_o numerous_a that_o in_o london_n they_o have_v several_a place_n for_o meeting_n it_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v a_o strange_a and_o incredible_a disparagement_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n not_o to_o have_v prevail_v so_o much_o in_o rome_n for_o the_o space_n of_o three_o hundred_o year_n though_o st._n paul_n preach_v there_o for_o a_o considerable_a time_n and_o there_o be_v a_o flourish_a church_n before_o he_o be_v bring_v thither_o however_o our_o author_n to_o leave_v no_o exception_n against_o the_o congregational_a rule_n 92._o rule_n prim._n ep_v p._n 91._o 92._o find_v enough_o to_o make_v it_o seem_v probable_a that_o the_o great_a of_o those_o city_n have_v no_o more_o christian_n under_o one_o bishop_n than_o be_v in_o some_o one_o of_o our_o parish_n and_o to_o begin_v with_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n 236_o 〈◊〉_d 236_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d all_o the_o faithful_a in_o rome_n do_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n to_o choose_v a_o bishop_n in_o the_o place_n of_o anterus_n euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 29._o i_o have_v already_o upon_o other_o occasion_n show_v the_o import_n of_o these_o expression_n all_o the_o people_n all_o the_o brethren_n all_o the_o city_n etc._n etc._n and_o how_o unreasonable_a it_o be_v to_o require_v exactness_n of_o testimony_n from_o phrase_n of_o amplification_n if_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a in_o rome_n without_o any_o allowance_n or_o exception_n do_v meet_v in_o one_o place_n in_o the_o three_o century_n to_o choose_v a_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v assemble_v in_o one_o place_n it_o will_v follow_v from_o the_o very_a same_o phrase_n that_o in_o the_o four_o five_o and_o six_o century_n and_o so_o forward_o there_o be_v but_o one_o congregation_n in_o rome_n after_o it_o be_v become_v christian_n for_o in_o the_o four_o age_n felix_n and_o all_o the_o roman_a clergy_n prec_n clergy_n praesente_fw-la populo_fw-la romano_n marcel_n &_o faustin_n l._n 16._o prec_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n swear_v they_o will_v not_o choose_v any_o other_o bishop_n while_o liberius_n live_v in_o the_o next_o vigil_n next_o dataque_fw-la oratione_fw-la respondit_fw-la omnis_fw-la populus_fw-la amen_o lib._n pont._n in_o
vigil_n all_o the_o people_n be_v say_v to_o answer_v amen_o to_o the_o prayer_n which_o vigilius_n their_o bishop_n make_v pelagius_n be_v say_v in_o st._n peter_n church_n in_o rome_n to_o have_v go_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n and_o satisfy_v pelag._n satisfy_v satisfecit_fw-la cuncto_fw-la populo_fw-la &_o plebi_fw-la quia_fw-la nullum_fw-la malum_fw-la fecisset_fw-la contra_fw-la vigilium_fw-la lib._n pont._n in_o pelag._n all_o the_o people_n that_o he_o have_v do_v vigilius_n his_o predecessor_n no_o harm_n gregory_n the_o great_a be_v say_v to_o be_v choose_v by_o 40._o by_o gregonium_n diaconum_fw-la plebs_fw-la omnis_fw-la elegit_fw-la greg._n turon_n l._n x._o c._n 1._o joh._n diacon_n l._n 1._o c._n 39_o 40._o all_o the_o people_n though_o at_o that_o time_n in_o rome_n there_o be_v neither_o heathen_a nor_o sectary_n to_o make_v any_o abatement_n in_o the_o bishop_n flock_n nay_o if_o our_o author_n will_v insist_v rigid_o upon_o this_o phrase_n all_o israel_n in_o the_o time_n of_o samuel_n be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o place_n to_o hear_v samuel_n who_o be_v say_v 12.1.4_o say_v 1_o sam._n 12.1.4_o to_o speak_v to_o all_o israel_n and_o they_o answer_v he_o that_o he_o have_v neither_o oppress_v nor_o defraud_v they_o but_o our_o author_n proceed_v 92._o proceed_v prim._n ep_v p._n 92._o they_o be_v no_o more_o after_o anno._n 250_o than_o can_v all_o together_o in_o the_o church_n importune_v cornelius_n for_o the_o readmission_n of_o the_o ordeiner_n of_o novatian_n the_o whole_a people_n intercede_v for_o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 43._o our_o author_n according_a to_o his_o usual_a ingenuity_n have_v leave_v out_o a_o word_n that_o spoil_v his_o argument_n and_o limit_v this_o expression_n for_o cornelius_n do_v not_o say_v that_o all_o the_o christian_a people_n of_o rome_n importune_v he_o 〈◊〉_d he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o that_o all_o the_o people_n that_o be_v present_a with_o he_o do_v intercede_v they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v concur_v in_o a_o epistle_n to_o salute_v their_o brethren_n at_o carthage_n salutant_fw-la vos_fw-la fratres_fw-la &_o tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 3._o as_o though_o the_o general_a salutation_n of_o a_o church_n can_v not_o be_v send_v without_o the_o actual_a concurrence_n of_o every_o member_n how_o many_o public_a act_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o people_n though_o the_o twenty_o part_n be_v not_o present_v when_o they_o be_v make_v or_o shall_v we_o fancy_v that_o all_o the_o citizen_n of_o rome_n meet_v in_o one_o assembly_n to_o pass_v every_o order_n that_o bear_v the_o title_n of_o senatus_n populusque_fw-la romanus_n 93._o romanus_n prim._n ep_v p._n 93._o they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o cornelius_n can_v read_v cyprian_n letter_n to_o in_o their_o numerous_a assembly_n amplissimae_fw-la plebi_fw-la they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v all_o be_v present_a about_o consultation_n about_o matter_n of_o concernment_n etc._n etc._n consultis_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o ipsis_fw-la stantibus_fw-la laicis_fw-la cypr._n ep_v 26._o a_o bishop_n may_v communicate_v letter_n and_o propoposal_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n in_o a_o full_a congregation_n and_o to_o all_o the_o people_n then_o present_a and_o yet_o this_o can_v imply_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o christian_n or_o no_o other_o congregation_n in_o that_o city_n whatsoever_o be_v do_v in_o public_a and_o before_o a_o congregation_n that_o be_v unlimited_a be_v in_o the_o common_a way_n of_o speak_v say_v to_o be_v do_v before_o all_o the_o community_n i_o meet_v with_o nothing_o say_v our_o author_n 93._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 93._o that_o make_v any_o show_n of_o a_o probability_n that_o their_o number_n be_v more_o at_o that_o time_n but_o cornelius_n his_o catalogue_n of_o officer_n and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o poor_a which_o be_v fifteen_o hundred_o euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 37._o this_o passage_n have_v not_o hitherto_o receive_v any_o answer_n that_o make_v so_o much_o as_o a_o show_n of_o probability_n and_o that_o which_o our_o author_n repli_v to_o the_o number_n of_o officer_n have_v be_v long_o since_o 51._o since_o vindic._n prim_fw-la ch_n p._n 51._o show_v to_o be_v frivolous_a as_o to_o the_o number_n of_o officer_n the_o show_n will_v vanish_v mr._n clerkson_n fancy_n if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o those_o ancient_a time_n to_o multiply_v officer_n beyond_o what_o be_v necessary_a yea_o so_o much_o that_o as_o nazianzen_n 1._o nazianzen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d greg._n naz_n or._n 1._o tell_v we_o the_o officer_n be_v sometime_o as_o many_o as_o they_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o it_o may_v be_v excusable_a in_o mr._n baxter_n to_o confound_v time_n of_o persecution_n with_o time_n of_o settlement_n and_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o three_o century_n with_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o four_o for_o he_o be_v too_o hasty_a to_o be_v curious_a and_o look_v not_o the_o date_n of_o the_o fable_n so_o it_o happen_v upon_o a_o time_n or_o short_o after_o he_o be_v content_v but_o from_o mr._n clerkson_n something_a may_v be_v expect_v more_o exact_a what_o will_v this_o show_v of_o probability_n vanish_v and_o no_o likelihood_n that_o there_o be_v more_o congregation_n in_o rome_n than_o one_o remain_z from_o six_o and_o forty_o presbyter_n in_o cornelius_n his_o time_n because_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o nazianzen_n time_n to_o multiply_v officer_n beyond_o what_o be_v necessary_a forty_o six_o presbyter_n be_v never_o account_v necessary_a to_o one_o congregation_n even_o in_o the_o most_o prosperous_a time_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o can_v any_o instance_n be_v give_v of_o so_o many_o relate_n to_o one_o assembly_n in_o any_o age_n account_v ancient_a though_o it_o may_v be_v fashionable_a then_o to_o multiply_v church_n officer_n but_o for_o this_o we_o be_v at_o a_o great_a certainty_n for_o cornelius_n 43._o cornelius_n euseb_n h.e._n l._n 6._o c._n 43._o assure_v we_o that_o this_o number_n be_v not_o for_o state_n nor_o for_o form_n without_o use_n and_o necessity_n but_o exceed_v necessary_a and_o that_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o a_o infinite_a and_o numberless_a people_n and_o if_o the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n in_o rome_n be_v then_o so_o great_a as_o to_o require_v forty_o six_o presbyter_n we_o may_v make_v some_o guess_n at_o the_o proportion_n they_o may_v have_v to_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n after_o it_o have_v be_v entire_o convert_v in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o century_n for_o in_o those_o time_n the_o presbyter_n of_o rome_n be_v scarce_o a_o three_o part_n more_o than_o those_o in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o cornelius_n as_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o the_o subscription_n of_o the_o presbyter_n in_o the_o roman_a 67._o roman_a synod_n rom._n 1._o sub_fw-la symmach_n subs_n pres_n 67._o council_n nay_o in_o one_o synod_n 44._o synod_n cum_fw-la episc_n omnibus_fw-la &_o rom._n eccl._n presbyteris_fw-la greg._n reg._n l._n 4._o ep_n 44._o under_o gregory_n the_o great_a there_o be_v but_o thirty_o four_o presbyter_n that_o subscribe_v i_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o say_v that_o two_o three_o of_o that_o city_n be_v then_o christian_n but_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o place_n under_o cornelius_n seem_v to_o be_v at_o least_o two_o three_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o rome_n in_o after_o age_n when_o it_o be_v much_o diminish_v from_o its_o ancient_a greatness_n and_o when_o it_o seem_v to_o have_v no_o more_o than_o seventy_o parish_n presbyter_n this_o number_n therefore_o of_o forty_o six_o presbyter_n all_o necessary_a for_o so_o great_a a_o people_n as_o the_o christian_n of_o rome_n then_o be_v make_v it_o evident_a notwithstanding_o the_o frivolous_a exception_n of_o our_o author_n that_o the_o believer_n of_o that_o city_n can_v not_o all_o assemble_v together_o upon_o any_o religious_a occasion_n and_o that_o the_o church_n there_o must_v consequent_o be_v distribute_v to_o several_a parish_n and_o congregation_n 94._o congregation_n prim._n ep_v p._n 94._o as_o to_o the_o other_o how_o to_o compute_v the_o number_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o the_o number_n of_o the_o poor_a i_o know_v no_o better_a way_n than_o to_o observe_v what_o proportion_n there_o be_v betwixt_o these_o in_o other_o place_n but_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o exception_n be_v a_o mistake_n for_o cornelius_n do_v not_o say_v that_o the_o number_n of_o all_o the_o poor_a christian_n in_o rome_n be_v but_o fifteen_o hundred_o but_o that_o so_o many_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o public_a stock_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o the_o necessary_a officer_n now_o there_o may_v be_v many_o more_o poor_a maintain_v some_o by_o relation_n other_o by_o private_a charity_n and_o it_o be_v plain_a from_o the_o account_n that_o chrysostom_n give_v of_o the_o poor_a of_o antioch_n and_o the_o number_n in_o the_o church-book_n that_o those_o
that_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o church_n be_v but_o a_o small_a part_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o whole_a number_n of_o the_o poor_a for_o exhort_v the_o rich_a man_n to_o contribute_v towards_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o poor_a he_o observe_v how_o easy_a it_o will_v be_v to_o provide_v for_o they_o for_o the_o church_n say_v he_o 422._o he_o chrys_n hom._n 66._o in_o matth._n p._n 421._o 422._o maintain_v many_o widow_n and_o virgin_n and_o prisoner_n and_o sick_a and_o clergy_n the_o number_n of_o those_o upon_o the_o role_n maintain_v by_o the_o public_a stock_n of_o the_o church_n be_v about_o three_o thousand_o now_o the_o income_n of_o the_o church_n be_v scarce_o equal_a to_o one_o of_o the_o low_a of_o those_o account_v rich_a if_o therefore_o but_o ten_o such_o rich_a man_n will_v dispose_v of_o their_o estate_n as_o the_o church_n do_v there_o will_v not_o be_v a_o poor_a man_n in_o all_o antioch_n unprovided_a nay_o if_o all_o the_o rich_a man_n will_v but_o give_v a_o ten_o part_n to_o charity_n it_o will_v answer_v all_o occasion_n so_o that_o upon_o the_o computation_n of_o chrysostom_n the_o church_n do_v not_o relieve_v above_o a_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o yet_o this_o must_v be_v more_o in_o proportion_n than_o the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v suppose_v able_a to_o do_v in_o cornelius_n his_o time_n when_o it_o have_v no_o other_o revenue_n than_o the_o oblation_n of_o the_o faithful_a whereas_o in_o chrysostom_n time_n beside_o these_o it_o be_v endow_v with_o great_a possession_n and_o be_v maintain_v from_o the_o rent_n or_o product_n of_o her_o estate_n the_o capital_a remain_a undiminish_a as_o he_o observe_v in_o the_o same_o place_n our_o author_n have_v lay_v this_o false_a foundation_n proceed_v to_o build_v upon_o it_o in_o this_o manner_n that_o at_o constantinople_n chrysostom_n compute_v the_o poor_a to_o have_v be_v half_a as_o many_o as_o all_o the_o other_o christian_n there_o at_o antioch_n the_o same_o father_n suppose_v the_o poor_a a_o ten_o part_n the_o first_o be_v unreasonable_a and_o without_o example_n in_o any_o city_n the_o latter_a multiply_v the_o poor_a that_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o relief_n i_o think_v beyond_o what_o we_o can_v find_v in_o any_o rich_a city_n such_o as_o antioch_n be_v yet_o upon_o this_o foot_n let_v we_o reckon_v the_o fifteen_o hundred_o roman_a poor_a we_o will_v suppose_v according_a to_o chrysostom_n to_o be_v the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o poor_a christian_n of_o the_o place_n the_o sum_n will_v be_v fifteen_o thousand_o these_o multiply_v by_o ten_o will_v make_v a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o thousand_o and_o this_o may_v be_v suppose_v about_o a_o seven_o part_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n in_o rome_n of_o all_o age_n and_o condition_n and_o consider_v the_o great_a ostentation_n which_o tertullian_n make_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o age_n and_o the_o great_a increase_n they_o receive_v in_o the_o time_n intervening_a between_o tertullian_n and_o cornelius_n under_o alexander_n severus_n and_o philip_n i_o can_v but_o think_v i_o set_v their_o proportion_n too_o low_a when_o i_o reckon_v they_o but_o a_o seven_o part_n i_o can_v pass_v by_o one_o passage_n in_o the_o same_o homily_n of_o chrysostom_n that_o i_o can_v reconcile_v with_o his_o supposition_n that_o make_v the_o poor_a of_o antioch_n the_o ten_o part_n of_o the_o city_n when_o he_o have_v divide_v the_o people_n into_o ten_o part_n he_o make_v one_o to_o consist_v of_o rich_a man_n another_z of_o very_o poor_a man_n the_o other_o eight_o to_o consist_v of_o such_o as_o have_v competence_n of_o estate_n and_o be_v neither_o very_a rich_a nor_o very_o poor_a yet_o have_v make_v this_o distribution_n he_o say_v that_o if_o the_o poor_a be_v divide_v between_o those_o who_o be_v rich_a and_o those_o who_o be_v not_o poor_a there_o will_v not_o one_o poor_a man_n fall_v to_o the_o share_n of_o fifty_o or_o a_o hundred_o whereas_o according_a to_o his_o distribution_n there_o will_v be_v a_o poor_a man_n leave_v between_o nine_o i_o can_v think_v chrysostom_n so_o little_o skill_v in_o arithmetic_n as_o to_o commit_v a_o mistake_n in_o so_o obvious_a a_o reckon_n i_o have_v rather_o suspect_v the_o read_n in_o this_o place_n of_o the_o ten_o part_n which_o with_o small_a variation_n may_v be_v reconcile_v with_o the_o follow_a computation_n but_o have_v not_o the_o countenance_n of_o any_o critic_n nor_o the_o authority_n of_o any_o copy_n i_o be_o content_a to_o leave_v it_o as_o i_o find_v it_o however_o as_o it_o stand_v it_o do_v but_o small_a service_n for_o the_o diminish_n of_o christian_n in_o ancient_a time_n alexandria_n follow_v dress_v up_o in_o a_o magnificent_a character_n 96._o character_n prim._n ep_v p._n 96._o the_o great_a after_o rome_n the_o mart_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o top_n of_o city_n but_o presume_v not_o you_o christian_n to_o take_v too_o much_o upon_o you_o for_o these_o glorious_a thing_n belong_v to_o jew_n and_o heathen_n and_o it_o be_v but_o a_o small_a skirt_n of_o this_o macedonian_a cloak_n that_o come_v to_o your_o share_n nay_o since_o you_o be_v find_v so_o inconsiderable_a in_o so_o great_a a_o place_n this_o very_a instance_n will_v preclude_v all_o your_o pretension_n to_o number_n and_o greatness_n in_o all_o other_o city_n here_o our_o author_n undertake_v to_o show_v that_o the_o christian_n be_v not_o more_o than_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o place_n and_o think_v fit_a to_o skirmish_v at_o first_o with_o argument_n so_o slight_a that_o he_o himself_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o insist_v on_o they_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o three_o age_n dionysius_n call_v the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o a_o scrupulous_a member_n of_o it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o can_v but_o commend_v his_o discretion_n for_o not_o insist_v upon_o such_o thing_n as_o these_o though_o i_o think_v the_o allege_v of_o they_o argue_v more_o of_o diligence_n than_o judgement_n for_o though_o this_o critical_a observation_n shall_v be_v allow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n be_v sometime_o call_v a_o synagogue_n the_o consequence_n that_o our_o author_n make_v that_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o assembly_n of_o christian_n in_o that_o city_n be_v invisible_a but_o the_o misfortune_n be_v that_o dionysius_n say_v no_o such_o thing_n for_o he_o call_v not_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o alexandria_n by_o that_o name_n but_o relate_v the_o case_n of_o a_o person_n who_o be_v trouble_v in_o conscience_n concern_v his_o baptism_n say_v 9_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 9_o he_o do_v partake_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o assemble_v with_o they_o but_o whether_o there_o be_v then_o but_o one_o church_n or_o congregation_n in_o alexandria_n or_o several_a can_v be_v deduce_v from_o that_o expression_n and_o all_o it_o import_v in_o that_o place_n be_v only_o that_o the_o person_n be_v in_o full_a and_o entire_a communion_n and_o so_o the_o same_o author_n use_v the_o word_n in_o his_o epistle_n 7._o epistle_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 7._o to_o philemon_n a_o roman_a presbyter_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o heretic_n who_o do_v outward_o communicate_v with_o the_o church_n the_o other_o passage_n which_o our_o author_n will_v not_o insist_v upon_o seem_v to_o surpass_v the_o former_a in_o impertinence_n the_o place_n of_o their_o panegyrical_a assembly_n which_o be_v their_o great_a of_o all_o be_v in_o his_o time_n a_o place_n of_o no_o great_a reception_n not_o only_o a_o field_n and_o a_o desert_n but_o a_o ship_n a_o inn_n or_o a_o prison_n wonderful_a that_o a_o field_n and_o a_o desert_n shall_v not_o be_v place_n of_o great_a reception_n and_o that_o the_o christian_n must_v be_v account_v few_o because_o they_o choose_v such_o place_n for_o their_o assembly_n where_o not_o only_o the_o church_n of_o one_o city_n may_v assemble_v but_o nation_n may_v inhabit_v but_o to_o let_v this_o pass_v and_o to_o consider_v the_o pertinence_n of_o this_o allegation_n dionysius_n speak_v of_o the_o calamitous_a estate_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o alexandria_n scatter_v by_o persecution_n from_o the_o heathen_a and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n visit_v with_o a_o pestilence_n and_o comfort_v his_o brethren_n from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o approach_a festival_n of_o easter_n to_o other_o say_v he_o 22._o he_o euseb_n h._n e._n l._n 7._o c._n 22._o this_o may_v scarce_o seem_v a_o festival_n and_o to_o the_o heathen_a neither_o this_o nor_o any_o other_o can_v be_v account_v such_o though_o it_o may_v have_v a_o great_a appearance_n of_o happiness_n for_o now_o grief_n and_o lamentation_n fill_v every_o place_n and_o there_o be_v not_o a_o
house_n in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o dead_a and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n there_o be_v but_o one_o dead_a in_o a_o house_n however_o we_o christian_n cast_v out_o and_o persecute_v and_o put_v to_o death_n even_o than_o keep_v the_o feast_n for_o the_o place_n of_o every_o one_o affliction_n be_v to_o he_o a_o place_n of_o solemn_a assembly_n the_o open_a field_n the_o wilderness_n the_o ship_n the_o inn_n the_o prison_n where_o each_o happen_v then_o to_o be_v in_o this_o time_n of_o dispersion_n be_v to_o he_o a_o church_n if_o i_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o trifle_n i_o may_v urge_v this_o for_o proof_n that_o the_o christian_n of_o alexandria_n have_v several_a panegyrical_a assembly_n if_o it_o may_v be_v say_v without_o solecism_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o in_o the_o several_a place_n mention_v by_o dionysius_n but_o i_o have_v neither_o inclination_n nor_o forehead_n to_o follow_v our_o author_n in_o this_o way_n of_o discourse_n nor_o be_v it_o in_o every_o one_o power_n to_o recommend_v for_o fair_a probability_n what_o he_o can_v but_o know_v to_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n 97._o purpose_n prim._n ep_v p._n 97._o but_o athanasius_n in_o his_o apology_n to_o constantius_n about_o anno._n 355_o make_v it_o evident_a beyond_o all_o contradiction_n he_o be_v accuse_v for_o assemble_v the_o people_n in_o the_o great_a church_n before_o it_o be_v dedicate_v make_v this_o part_n of_o his_o defence_n that_o the_o confluence_n of_o the_o pascal_n solemnity_n be_v so_o great_a that_o if_o they_o have_v meet_v in_o several_a assembly_n the_o other_o church_n be_v so_o little_a and_o straight_o that_o they_o will_v have_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o suffer_v by_o the_o crowd_n and_o it_o be_v better_a for_o the_o whole_a multitude_n to_o meet_v in_o that_o great_a church_n be_v a_o place_n large_a enough_o to_o receive_v they_o all_o together_o this_o passage_n have_v be_v often_o urge_v and_o answer_v by_o several_a hand_n so_o that_o i_o may_v spare_v myself_o the_o labour_n of_o any_o far_a reply_n than_o refer_v to_o those_o book_n in_o which_o it_o have_v be_v examine_v especial_o since_o our_o author_n have_v think_v fit_a to_o add_v nothing_o new_a but_o word_n of_o assurance_n and_o ostentation_n that_o it_o be_v evident_a beyond_o contradiction_n and_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o nothing_o that_o have_v be_v offer_v to_o impeach_v this_o irrefragable_a evidence_n however_o to_o avoid_v cavil_n i_o be_o content_a here_o again_o to_o take_v it_o into_o examination_n and_o first_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v yield_v to_o our_o author_n that_o it_o be_v certain_a from_o this_o passage_n that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o alexandria_n be_v present_a in_o this_o assembly_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o be_v of_o that_o service_n to_o his_o notion_n as_o he_o may_v imagine_v suppose_v then_o the_o flock_n of_o athanasius_n reduce_v so_o low_a that_o one_o great_a church_n may_v receive_v it_o all_o if_o this_o shall_v proceed_v from_o some_o late_a accident_n and_o be_v owe_v to_o such_o separation_n as_o have_v be_v late_o make_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v of_o no_o use_n either_o for_o the_o prove_v of_o congregational_a episcopacy_n in_o elder_a time_n or_o for_o the_o discover_n of_o the_o proportion_n of_o christian_n in_o other_o city_n suppose_v the_o dissenter_n shall_v prevail_v so_o far_o in_o some_o one_o diocese_n with_o we_o as_o to_o leave_v the_o bishop_n no_o more_o people_n than_o may_v be_v crowd_v into_o one_o of_o the_o great_a cathedral_n of_o the_o kingdom_n it_o will_v sure_o be_v but_o a_o sorry_a argument_n that_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o episcopacy_n be_v congregational_a or_o that_o we_o have_v no_o diocese_n great_a than_o may_v assemble_v in_o one_o church_n this_o according_a to_o mr._n clerkson_n 47._o clerkson_n no_o evidence_n for_o diocese_n episc_n p._n 47._o be_v the_o case_n of_o alexandria_n in_o athanasius_n his_o time_n at_o the_o first_o breach_n meletius_n have_v many_o more_o adherent_n than_o peter_n and_o from_o that_o time_n to_o athanasius_n the_o meletian_o have_v such_o encouragement_n that_o their_o number_n be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v impair_v and_o as_o for_o the_o arrian_n if_o we_o may_v take_v the_o measure_n of_o the_o people_n by_o their_o officer_n they_o be_v more_o numerous_a than_o the_o catholic_n in_o this_o city_n for_o 15._o for_o theod._n h._n e._n l._n 4._o c._n 22._o soz._n l._n 1._o c._n 15._o of_o nine_o it_o shall_v be_v nineteen_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n which_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n have_v eleven_o embrace_v arrianism_n there_o be_v many_o mistake_v in_o what_o be_v here_o advance_v concern_v the_o meletian_o and_o the_o party_n of_o arrius_n but_o the_o course_n of_o the_o argument_n must_v not_o be_v interrupt_v in_o these_o circumstance_n the_o arrian_n might_n well_o outvie_v the_o follower_n of_o athanasius_n in_o number_n and_o these_o decline_v as_o the_o other_o increase_v now_o if_o the_o party_n of_o athanasius_n which_o in_o mr._n clerkson_n judgement_n be_v inferior_a in_o number_n to_o the_o arrian_n be_v yet_o so_o great_a as_o to_o fill_v all_o the_o church_n in_o alexandria_n and_o can_v not_o have_v meet_v in_o any_o one_o church_n before_o that_o vast_a fabric_n be_v erect_v by_o constantius_n the_o arrian_n sure_o who_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v the_o great_a party_n must_v divide_v into_o many_o congregation_n and_o live_v in_o the_o diocesan_n way_n especial_o in_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n who_o seem_v to_o have_v join_v the_o arrian_n and_o meletian_a party_n for_o by_o epiphanius_n 2._o epiphanius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epiph._n haer._n 69._o n._n 2._o he_o be_v style_v both_o arrian_n and_o meletian_n for_o though_o that_o sect_n divide_v from_o the_o church_n upon_o a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o do_v they_o not_o pretend_v to_o make_v any_o alteration_n in_o discipline_n and_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o city_n how_o great_a soever_o it_o may_v be_v so_o that_o our_o author_n while_o he_o lessen_v the_o catholic_n of_o alexandria_n do_v unaware_o make_v the_o arrian_n not_o a_o congregation_n but_o a_o diocese_n nor_o be_v it_o any_o advantage_n to_o the_o congregational_a fancy_n to_o straighten_v the_o catholic_n christian_n within_o the_o wall_n of_o one_o church_n while_o his_o indulgence_n to_o other_o christian_a sect_n permit_v they_o to_o increase_v beyond_o his_o rule_n and_o to_o grow_v up_o into_o a_o diocesan_n stature_n have_v consider_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o passage_n of_o athanasius_n upon_o a_o kind_a supposition_n that_o it_o prove_v the_o thing_n for_o which_o it_o be_v produce_v i_o proceed_v to_o show_v that_o this_o testimony_n do_v not_o certain_o evince_v that_o the_o christian_n of_o athanasius_n his_o communion_n be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v meet_v or_o actual_o assemble_v in_o that_o great_a church_n mr._n baxter_n 10._o baxter_n ch._n hist_o p._n 10._o be_v not_o so_o rigid_a in_o his_o inference_n from_o this_o testimony_n as_o to_o contend_v that_o every_o christian_n of_o alexandria_n be_v present_a in_o that_o assembly_n i_o do_v not_o hence_o gather_v say_v he_o that_o every_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n be_v present_a and_o to_o he_o this_o only_o seem_v hence_o plain_a that_o the_o main_a body_n of_o they_o can_v meet_v and_o hear_v in_o one_o assembly_n but_o all_o thing_n be_v not_o equal_o plain_a to_o all_o people_n for_o if_o all_o the_o other_o church_n in_o alexandria_n can_v not_o receive_v this_o congregation_n i_o be_o afraid_a they_o can_v not_o all_o hear_v unless_o it_o be_v the_o amen_o which_o they_o all_o pronounce_v aloud_o and_o that_o indeed_o may_v be_v hear_v from_o far_o for_o in_o alexandria_n beside_o this_o great_a church_n epiphanius_n 〈◊〉_d epiphanius_n epiph._n haer._n 69._o n._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d name_v nine_o more_o and_o add_v that_o there_o be_v other_o church_n beside_o which_o he_o have_v probable_o name_v with_o the_o rest_n if_o they_o have_v be_v but_o few_o nor_o can_v they_o well_o be_v conceive_v much_o few_o than_o twenty_o for_o in_o rome_n 2._o rome_n optat._n l._n 2._o there_o be_v above_o forty_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o constantine_n reign_n suppose_v then_o a_o congregation_n that_o twelve_o church_n can_v not_o contain_v which_o though_o much_o inferior_a to_o this_o new_a cathedral_n yet_o have_v some_o of_o they_o serve_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o great_a city_n in_o the_o world_n after_o rome_n and_o his_o congregation_n it_o will_v be_v scarce_o possible_a to_o conceive_v how_o all_o that_o multitude_n shall_v hear_v especial_o since_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o in_o those_o day_n any_o church_n have_v scaffold_n or_o gallery_n but_o all_o the_o people_n stand_v in_o the_o area_n and_o nothing_o raise_v above_o the_o
floor_n but_o the_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n seat_n and_o such_o place_n from_o whence_o any_o of_o the_o church_n officer_n speak_v or_o read_v to_o the_o people_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o so_o plain_a as_o it_o seem_v to_o mr._n baxter_n that_o all_o can_v hear_v in_o such_o a_o assembly_n as_o this_o now_o where_o a_o multitude_n be_v so_o numerous_a that_o the_o great_a part_n can_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o service_n for_o which_o they_o be_v assemble_v it_o seem_v to_o be_v no_o long_o one_o congregation_n since_o it_o can_v attain_v that_o purpose_n which_o bring_v they_o together_o and_o therefore_o be_v a_o congregation_n for_o show_v and_o solemnity_n and_o not_o for_o edification_n and_o religious_a service_n nor_o can_v any_o bound_n be_v assign_v to_o such_o a_o assembly_n for_o a_o nation_n may_v be_v bring_v together_o in_o that_o manner_n and_o therefore_o when_o a_o multitude_n though_o crowd_v together_o in_o one_o place_n become_v uncapable_a of_o attain_v the_o end_n of_o religious_a assembly_n it_o have_v out-grown_a the_o congregational_a standard_n as_o much_o as_o if_o it_o be_v disperse_v in_o forty_o distant_a place_n at_o a_o coronation_n all_o the_o people_n in_o westminster_n abby_n may_v be_v think_v but_o one_o congregation_n yet_o the_o great_a part_n hear_v no_o more_o of_o what_o be_v say_v than_o those_o who_o be_v ten_o mile_n off_o they_o may_v join_v in_o one_o common_a acclamation_n as_o that_o alexandrian_a assembly_n do_v in_o a_o amen_o so_o they_o may_v though_o they_o be_v twenty_o time_n as_o many_o so_o that_o such_o a_o notion_n of_o a_o congregation_n run_v on_o to_o infinite_a and_o that_o of_o which_o we_o be_v speak_v be_v in_o all_o probability_n of_o this_o sort_n it_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o pretend_a primitive_a episcopacy_n and_o be_v of_o no_o use_n in_o the_o present_a question_n however_o the_o whole_a multitude_n meet_v in_o the_o great_a church_n which_o be_v large_a enough_o to_o receive_v they_o all_o but_o what_o multitude_n all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o city_n no_o mr._n baxter_n will_v not_o say_v that_o or_o all_o that_o be_v willing_a or_o have_v opportunity_n to_o attend_v the_o public_a devotion_n of_o the_o day_n athanasius_n say_v not_o that_o neither_o but_o that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a confluence_n that_o the_o parish-church_n can_v not_o hold_v they_o but_o there_o be_v no_o other_o congregation_n of_o athanasius_n his_o communion_n in_o alexandria_n on_o that_o easter-day_n beside_o this_o great_a one_o for_o the_o universal_a harmony_n and_o concurrence_n of_o the_o people_n have_v not_o be_v so_o visible_a if_o 〈◊〉_d if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o have_v meet_v in_o parcel_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o meeting_n still_o the_o question_n recur_v what_o people_n all_o the_o alexandrian_n of_o his_o communion_n nothing_o he_o say_v can_v be_v extend_v so_o far_o or_o make_v to_o comprehend_v any_o more_o than_o the_o multitude_n assemble_v at_o that_o time_n with_o intention_n to_o be_v present_a with_o the_o bishop_n this_o be_v all_o the_o people_n and_o all_o the_o multitude_n that_o he_o mention_n in_o this_o part_n of_o his_o defence_n but_o these_o be_v all_o his_o flock_n for_o universal_a harmony_n of_o all_o the_o people_n be_v visible_a this_o may_v be_v say_v of_o any_o general_a congregation_n assemble_v from_o all_o part_n though_o all_o individual_n nor_o perhaps_o half_a of_o they_o do_v not_o appear_v for_o leo_n the_o great_a about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o five_o century_n speak_v to_o his_o congregation_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n though_o in_o all_o probability_n not_o the_o twenty_o part_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o rome_n be_v present_a in_o you_o say_v he_o 3._o he_o in_o vobis_fw-la pietatem_fw-la christianae_n unitatis_fw-la agnosco_fw-la sicut_fw-la enim_fw-la ipsa_fw-la frequentia_fw-la testatur_fw-la intelligitis_fw-la enim_fw-la honorem_fw-la totius_fw-la gregis_fw-la celebrari_fw-la per_fw-la annua_fw-la festa_fw-la pastoris_fw-la leo._n serm._n anniv_n 3._o i_o can_v plain_o see_v the_o piety_n of_o christian_a unity_n as_o your_o confluence_n do_v declare_v and_o you_o understand_v that_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o whole_a flock_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o anniverssary_n of_o the_o pastor_n now_o to_o make_v up_o this_o image_n of_o christian_a unity_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v flow_v to_o the_o bishop_n church_n but_o only_o that_o the_o congregation_n shall_v be_v very_o great_a though_o not_o so_o as_o to_o exclude_v all_o other_o notwithstanding_o this_o expression_n there_o may_v be_v several_a other_o assembly_n in_o that_o city_n at_o the_o same_o time_n nor_o be_v it_o otherwise_o at_o alexandria_n as_o we_o may_v judge_v by_o a_o passage_n in_o the_o bishop_n defence_n he_o be_v accuse_v for_o have_v dedicate_v a_o church_n which_o the_o emperor_n have_v build_v without_o his_o order_n because_o the_o hold_n of_o the_o pascal_n assemby_n there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o dedication_n but_o the_o bishop_n protest_v 682._o protest_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apol._n ad_fw-la const_n p._n 682._o to_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o any_o such_o design_n that_o this_o very_a assembly_n be_v altogether_o accidental_a for_o he_o have_v give_v the_o people_n no_o notice_n nor_o summons_n to_o meet_v there_o now_o the_o parish_n presbyter_n of_o alexandria_n can_v well_o be_v suppose_v to_o leave_v their_o church_n unsupplied_a upon_o a_o presumption_n that_o all_o the_o people_n will_v assemble_v with_o the_o bishop_n and_o they_o can_v not_o but_o know_v that_o his_o church_n can_v not_o hold_v a_o ten_o part_n of_o they_o for_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o city_n can_v not_o receive_v they_o all_o and_o this_o new_a church_n not_o yet_o finish_v or_o dedicate_v they_o can_v not_o think_v of_o therefore_o in_o all_o probability_n they_o assemble_v their_o parish_n then_o as_o they_o do_v on_o other_o time_n unless_o we_o may_v fancy_v that_o on_o easter_n they_o always_o attend_v the_o bishop_n and_o so_o for_o all_o the_o easters_n before_o this_o leave_v much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o people_n without_o any_o service_n on_o that_o solemn_a time_n for_o but_o few_o of_o they_o can_v crowd_v into_o the_o bishop_n church_n before_o that_o great_a one_o be_v build_v and_o the_o number_n of_o the_o catholic_n christian_n have_v be_v great_a than_o be_v at_o this_o time_n of_o which_o we_o be_v speak_v to_o conclude_v all_o the_o alexandrian_n of_o the_o catholic_n communion_n be_v not_o present_a with_o their_o bishop_n in_o the_o new_a church_n those_o that_o come_v make_v a_o very_a great_a multitude_n and_o such_o as_o the_o other_o church_n can_v not_o hold_v consider_v they_o have_v each_o a_o congregation_n already_o these_o can_v not_o be_v disperse_v in_o the_o other_o church_n without_o danger_n these_o be_v proper_a to_o represent_v catholic_n unity_n and_o in_o short_a be_v a_o congregation_n suitable_a to_o the_o time_n though_o it_o may_v not_o comprehend_v all_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o great_a city_n our_o author_n go_v on_o to_o prove_v the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n no_o more_o than_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o congregation_n 98._o congregation_n prim._n ep_v p._n 98._o alexander_n the_o predecessor_n of_o athanasius_n assemble_v the_o whole_a multitude_n in_o the_o church_n call_v theonas_n the_o other_o church_n be_v all_o strait_a and_o little_a but_o still_o this_o multitude_n be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v the_o whole_a of_o the_o alexandrine_n church_n but_o only_o of_o the_o bishop_n congregation_n there_o be_v yet_o another_o kind_n of_o proof_n which_o he_o think_v may_v be_v as_o satisfactory_a to_o some_o and_o refer_v to_o mr._n baxter_n ch._n history_n p._n 9_o 10._o here_o i_o must_v own_v myself_o of_o his_o opinion_n for_o both_o be_v equal_o satisfactory_a and_o this_o to_o which_o he_o refer_v have_v be_v 58._o be_v vindic._n prim._n ch._n p._n 58._o sufficient_o answer_v he_o think_v the_o premise_n so_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o dionysius_n be_v observation_n that_o alexandria_n in_o his_o time_n be_v not_o by_o much_o so_o populous_a as_o of_o old_a the_o old_a man_n be_v more_o in_o number_n former_o than_o both_o old_a and_o young_a in_o his_o day_n if_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o this_o observation_n he_o be_v the_o more_o inexcusable_a for_o attempt_v to_o put_v upon_o his_o reader_n without_o any_o necessity_n if_o any_o one_o shall_v undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o london_n be_v not_o so_o populous_a now_o as_o it_o be_v a_o hundred_o year_n ago_o because_o a_o great_a mortality_n happen_v there_o about_o five_o and_o twenty_o year_n since_o and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o that_o pestilence_n all_o sort_n of_o inhabitant_n may_v not_o then_o equal_a even_o the_o
old_a man_n a_o few_o year_n before_o such_o a_o poor_a juggle_n will_v not_o pass_v upon_o child_n but_o in_o fact_n more_o remote_a there_o be_v a_o sort_n of_o man_n that_o take_v liberty_n and_o depend_v upon_o the_o ignorance_n of_o their_o reader_n and_o this_o observation_n be_v a_o instance_n of_o that_o practice_n for_o in_o dionysius_n the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n time_n there_o happen_v first_o a_o fatal_a sedition_n in_o that_o city_n and_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o people_n be_v slay_v the_o carcase_n of_o these_o corrupt_a the_o air_n and_o the_o water_n and_o beget_v a_o pestilence_n mortal_a beyond_o all_o example_n and_o this_o reduce_v the_o city_n so_o low_a as_o that_o bishop_n than_o represent_v it_o but_o it_o soon_o recover_v from_o that_o calamity_n as_o great_a city_n common_o do_v and_o maintain_v its_o rank_n for_o some_o time_n as_o the_o second_o city_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o antioch_n he_o observe_v 99_o observe_v prim._n ep_v p._n 99_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o first_o age_n be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v all_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o house_n of_o theophilus_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o recognition_n which_o though_o false_o ascribe_v to_o clemens_n be_v ancient_a nor_o will_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v a_o reason_n why_o the_o follow_a passage_n shall_v be_v forge_v theophilus_n domus_fw-la suae_fw-la ingentem_fw-la basilicam_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nomine_fw-la consecravit_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la omnis_fw-la multitudo_fw-la ad_fw-la audiendum_fw-la verbum_fw-la conveniens_fw-la etc._n etc._n l._n 10._o to_o some_o sort_n of_o people_n no_o evidence_n come_v amiss_o fable_n and_o forgery_n grow_v authentic_a if_o they_o seem_v favourable_a to_o their_o cause_n the_o recognition_n be_v on_o all_o hand_n give_v up_o for_o a_o idle_a forgery_n feign_v without_o any_o aim_n or_o tolerable_a guess_n of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o apostolic_a time_n i_o have_v some_o reason_n to_o suspect_v that_o this_o book_n be_v not_o so_o old_a as_o it_o be_v general_o imagine_v and_o it_o carry_v several_a mark_n of_o the_o four_o century_n of_o which_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o take_v notice_n in_o this_o place_n but_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o find_v a_o reason_n why_o this_o passage_n shall_v be_v forge_v nor_o indeed_o why_o he_o have_v forge_v all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o book_n nor_o be_v it_o necessary_a for_o many_o will_v lie_v out_o of_o gaiety_n of_o humour_n and_o to_o please_v their_o fancy_n without_o any_o other_o reason_n to_o move_v they_o but_o he_o that_o have_v not_o reason_n enough_o to_o discern_v this_o to_o be_v a_o fable_n have_v certain_o very_o little_a to_o spare_v 100_o spare_v prim._n ep_v p._n 100_o when_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la be_v bishop_n of_o this_o city_n our_o author_n observe_v there_o be_v but_o one_o house_n 〈◊〉_d house_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d where_o the_o church_n do_v meet_v of_o which_o he_o will_v not_o give_v up_o the_o possession_n and_o this_o he_o contend_v be_v not_o the_o bishop_n house_n but_o the_o house_n where_o the_o church_n do_v meet_v and_o be_v present_o after_o call_v 30._o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n l._n 7._o c._n 30._o the_o church_n the_o translator_n that_o he_o blame_v for_o call_v it_o the_o bishop_n house_n must_v be_v christophorson_n or_o musculus_fw-la for_o ruffinus_n and_o valesius_fw-la render_v it_o the_o house_n of_o the_o church_n now_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o church_n or_o the_o house_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o very_o clear_a nor_o very_o material_a for_o to_o be_v sure_o the_o church_n have_v a_o house_n where_o the_o bishop_n assemble_v and_o they_o may_v have_v twenty_o parish-church_n more_o for_o aught_o appear_v from_o this_o place_n but_o that_o which_o our_o author_n infer_v that_o one_o house_n be_v then_o sufficient_a otherwise_o they_o may_v have_v have_v more_o proceed_v from_o his_o usual_a acuteness_n the_o church_n need_v but_o one_o common_a house_n for_o the_o bishop_n assembly_n to_o which_o they_o all_o belong_v but_o they_o may_v have_v many_o house_n appropriate_v to_o parish_n and_o certain_a region_n of_o the_o town_n which_o can_v not_o be_v call_v the_o house_n of_o the_o church_n in_o general_n but_o only_o of_o such_o a_o part_n 100_o part_n prim._n ep_v p._n 100_o in_o the_o four_o age_n all_o the_o christian_n there_o can_v meet_v together_o for_o the_o choice_n of_o eustathius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d say_v theodoret_n l._n 1._o c._n 7._o this_o have_v be_v answer_v so_o often_o already_o that_o i_o be_o ashamed_a to_o repeat_v so_o obvious_a and_o plain_a a_o answer_n any_o more_o what_o proportion_n of_o antioch_n be_v christian_n in_o eustathius_n his_o time_n may_v be_v guess_v from_o the_o influence_n his_o deposition_n have_v upon_o that_o city_n which_o according_a to_o mr._n clerkson_n be_v but_o four_o year_n after_o his_o be_v bishop_n of_o that_o place_n the_o sedition_n say_v sozomen_n 19_o sozomen_n soz._n l._n 2._o c._n 19_o be_v so_o great_a that_o the_o whole_a city_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o be_v destroy_v the_o christian_n upon_o this_o occasion_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n if_o a_o independent_a congregation_n in_o london_n shall_v happen_v to_o have_v such_o a_o difference_n about_o their_o pastor_n it_o will_v scarce_o move_v a_o sedition_n in_o the_o city_n or_o endanger_v the_o safety_n of_o it_o in_o so_o high_a a_o manner_n after_o this_o our_o author_n represent_v the_o low_a condition_n of_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n in_o antioch_n while_o the_o arrian_n be_v master_n 9_o master_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o make_v but_o a_o mean_a congregation_n yet_o all_o the_o while_n the_o arrian_n bishop_n there_o be_v diocesan_n and_o have_v many_o church_n in_o that_o city_n which_o have_v belong_v once_o to_o the_o catholic_n christian_n and_o do_v still_o of_o right_n appertain_v to_o they_o and_o before_o the_o end_n of_o that_o century_n be_v actual_o recover_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o their_o old_a rightful_a possessor_n 103._o possessor_n prim._n ep_v p._n 103._o carthage_n next_o to_o the_o city_n foremention_v be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a of_o the_o empire_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o more_o christian_n in_o that_o church_n about_o anno._n 220_o than_o can_v meet_v together_o in_o one_o place_n for_o church-administration_n for_o this_o he_o tell_v we_o there_o be_v evidence_n enough_o in_o tertullian_n which_o at_o present_a i_o will_v not_o further_o take_v notice_n of_o than_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o a_o great_a antiquary_n the_o bishop_n of_o orleans_n our_o author_n speak_v of_o tertullian_n in_o this_o place_n like_o one_o who_o have_v not_o look_v in_o he_o for_o he_o have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n in_o that_o place_n on_o which_o albaspineus_n make_v his_o observation_n and_o what_o be_v worse_o that_o bishop_n have_v not_o a_o word_n about_o carthage_n all_o this_o be_v nothing_o but_o a_o vision_n that_o happen_v to_o our_o author_n in_o the_o dark_a when_o he_o talk_v of_o book_n without_o consult_v they_o tertullian_n 4._o tertullian_n tertul._n ad_fw-la uxor_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 4._o dispute_v warm_o against_o christian_a woman_n marry_v of_o heathen_a man_n propose_v many_o great_a difficulty_n to_o which_o such_o woman_n will_v be_v expose_v and_o what_o hindrance_n such_o a_o marriage_n must_v needs_o be_v to_o all_o christian_a office_n if_o the_o wife_n purpose_n to_o perform_v the_o station_n the_o husband_n appoint_v a_o bath_n if_o she_o ought_v to_o observe_v a_o fast_a her_o husband_n appoint_v a_o entertainment_n si_fw-la procedendum_fw-la est_fw-la if_o she_o be_v to_o go_v abroad_o upon_o charitable_a and_o christian_a visit_n to_o the_o poor_a and_o sick_a the_o business_n of_o her_o family_n be_v then_o extraordinary_a urgent_a it_o happen_v that_o some_o papist_n lay_v hold_v on_o that_o word_n and_o fancy_v they_o have_v find_v their_o procession_n in_o tertullian_n which_o albaspinaeus_n make_v bold_a to_o expose_v show_v that_o in_o those_o day_n there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n in_o a_o place_n and_o that_o general_o a_o small_a one_o and_o without_o ornament_n which_o i_o be_o very_o willing_a to_o grant_v for_o general_o speak_v so_o it_o be_v and_o most_o town_n have_v but_o one_o church_n but_o for_o carthage_n and_o city_n of_o that_o magnitude_n they_o may_v differ_v from_o the_o generality_n in_o this_o as_o they_o do_v in_o dimension_n and_o multitude_n of_o people_n that_o carthage_n have_v many_o christian_a assembly_n in_o tertullia_n time_n we_o need_v no_o other_o proof_n than_o the_o account_n he_o give_v scapula_n of_o the_o number_n of_o christian_n in_o that_o city_n scapulam_fw-la city_n tertull._n ad_fw-la scapulam_fw-la if_o they_o shall_v
offer_v themselves_o to_o martyrdom_n what_o can_v thou_o do_v with_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o people_n when_o man_n and_o woman_n every_o sex_n every_o age_n and_o condition_n shall_v offer_v themselves_o what_o fire_n what_o sword_n will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o destroy_v they_o how_o much_o must_v carthage_n suffer_v which_o then_o will_v be_v decimate_v by_o thou_o every_o one_o will_v suffer_v in_o his_o relation_n or_o his_o friend_n and_o there_o may_v appear_v among_o the_o sufferer_n person_n of_o thy_o own_o rank_n and_o of_o the_o high_a quality_n if_o thou_o will_v not_o spare_v we_o spare_v thyself_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o spare_v thyself_o spare_v carthage_n all_o this_o must_v appear_v very_o absurd_a and_o provoke_v the_o derision_n of_o the_o heathen_a if_o this_o multitude_n so_o populous_o set_v out_o may_v be_v sum_v up_o in_o one_o assembly_n and_o that_o no_o great_a one_o since_o the_o christian_n have_v not_o the_o convenience_n of_o great_a and_o capacious_a church_n at_o that_o time_n and_o may_v not_o be_v very_o willing_a to_o raise_v extraordinary_a fabric_n lest_o they_o shall_v expose_v themselves_o too_o much_o to_o the_o observation_n and_o envy_n of_o their_o enemy_n he_o who_o be_v not_o yet_o persuade_v that_o there_o be_v no_o more_o than_o one_o congregation_n of_o christian_n in_o carthage_n when_o tertullian_n write_v this_o let_v he_o if_o he_o think_v fit_a make_v himself_o the_o advocate_n of_o some_o sect_n in_o london_n that_o make_v but_o one_o congregation_n and_o plead_v their_o cause_n in_o this_o harangue_n and_o then_o see_v how_o well_o it_o will_v fit_v they_o now_o if_o the_o christian_n in_o carthage_n be_v so_o numerous_a in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o three_o century_n that_o it_o be_v incredible_a they_o can_v meet_v in_o one_o church_n and_o such_o a_o church_n as_o the_o condition_n of_o those_o time_n can_v bear_v the_o forty_o year_n that_o follow_v must_v exceed_o increase_v their_o number_n since_o they_o be_v the_o most_o favourable_a that_o the_o church_n meet_v with_o in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n and_o in_o afric_n especial_o where_o mr._n dodwell_n 52._o dodwell_n dissert_n cypr._n xi_o ss_z 48._o 52._o find_v no_o persecution_n from_o the_o ten_o year_n of_o severus_n anno_fw-la 202_o to_o the_o first_o of_o decius_n anno_fw-la 250._o and_o in_o general_a origen_n observe_v the_o increase_n of_o christian_n within_o this_o time_n to_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o much_o great_a than_o it_o have_v be_v in_o former_a time_n 120._o time_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d orig._n cont._n cell_n p._n l._n 3._o p._n 120._o because_o they_o be_v not_o then_o oppress_v by_o the_o emperor_n as_o they_o have_v be_v former_o 〈◊〉_d former_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o heathen_a against_o they_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n cease_v this_o long_a peace_n though_o it_o corrupt_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o christian_n yet_o it_o add_v much_o to_o their_o number_n as_o cyprian_n 123._o cyprian_n disciplinam_fw-la long_fw-mi pax_fw-la corruperat_fw-la populi_fw-la aliquando_fw-la numerosi_fw-la lamentanda_fw-la jactura_fw-la cypr._n the_o lap_n p._n 123._o observe_v who_o speak_v of_o the_o christian_n of_o carthage_n before_o decius_n his_o persecution_n extol_v their_o number_n while_o he_o bewail_v the_o ruin_n of_o those_o who_o yield_v to_o the_o enemy_n yet_o 104._o yet_o prim._n ep_v p._n 104._o in_o cyprian_n time_n in_o all_o church_n administration_n and_o transaction_n of_o moment_n in_o the_o church_n and_o bishopric_n of_o carthage_n all_o the_o people_n be_v to_o be_v present_a tota_n fraternitas_fw-la plebs_fw-la universa_fw-la stantes_fw-la laici_fw-la as_o he_o declare_v every_o where_n in_o his_o epistle_n and_o how_o all_o can_v be_v present_a if_o they_o be_v more_o than_o can_v meet_v together_o be_v not_o intelligible_a alas_o how_o difficult_a be_v it_o for_o some_o man_n to_o understand_v the_o plain_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n when_o they_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o it_o it_o be_v a_o incomprehensible_a figure_n of_o speech_n it_o seem_v to_o say_v that_o what_o be_v transact_v in_o a_o assize_n be_v do_v before_o the_o whole_a county_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o hall_n so_o large_a as_o to_o hold_v the_o people_n of_o one_o hundred_o much_o less_o a_o whole_a county_n and_o still_o people_n will_v talk_v after_o this_o unintelligible_a rate_n but_o of_o this_o topick_n we_o have_v say_v more_o than_o enough_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n be_v that_o of_o optatus_n concern_v the_o election_n of_o caecilian_a suffragio_fw-la totius_fw-la populi_fw-la and_o the_o deduction_n he_o make_v upon_o the_o account_n of_o the_o donatist_n in_o carthage_n so_o as_o to_o leave_v the_o catholic_n christian_n but_o one_o congregation_n be_v by_o much_o too_o liberal_a to_o the_o schismatic_n for_o it_o be_v know_v to_o every_o body_n that_o have_v but_o look_v into_o st._n austin_n that_o those_o of_o the_o catholic_n communion_n in_o that_o city_n have_v many_o and_o great_a church_n for_o their_o assembly_n in_o the_o four_o century_n to_o the_o four_o great_a city_n of_o the_o empire_n our_o author_n 106._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 106._o think_v fit_a to_o add_v jerusalem_n although_o '_o far_a inferior_a in_o greatness_n because_o of_o the_o many_o thousand_o convert_v there_o by_o the_o apostle_n but_o i_o have_v show_v that_o of_o those_o five_o thousand_o convert_v the_o twenty_o part_n can_v in_o reason_n be_v account_v inhabitant_n of_o the_o city_n what_o he_o have_v say_v of_o this_o matter_n have_v be_v examine_v at_o large_a in_o jerusalem_n many_o accession_n of_o convert_v be_v mention_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o act_n which_o he_o do_v account_n for_o and_o all_o this_o in_o a_o few_o year_n before_o the_o call_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o st._n paul_n nor_o do_v the_o progress_n of_o christianity_n in_o jerusalem_n stop_v where_o st._n luke_n break_v off_o his_o relation_n of_o the_o numerous_a conversion_n but_o before_o the_o destruction_n of_o that_o city_n and_o the_o jewish_a nation_n we_o be_v tell_v by_o hegesippus_n 23._o hegesippus_n apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 2._o c._n 23._o that_o the_o scribe_n make_v a_o uproar_n and_o cry_v that_o the_o whole_a city_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o become_v christian_n their_o apprehension_n have_v be_v very_o childish_a if_o the_o christian_n have_v not_o yet_o increase_v beyond_o one_o congregation_n when_o the_o rabbin_n will_v have_v near_o five_o hundred_o synagogue_n to_o have_v be_v in_o jerusalem_n at_o that_o time_n about_o forty_o year_n after_o this_o church_n consist_v of_o no_o more_o than_o pella_n a_o small_a city_n can_v entertain_v together_o with_o its_o own_o inhabitant_n what_o may_v happen_v to_o this_o church_n a_o few_o year_n before_o the_o destruction_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v altogether_o unknown_a but_o that_o not_o long_o before_o it_o be_v very_o flourish_v we_o learn_v from_o the_o act_n and_o hegesippus_n if_o persecution_n or_o apostasy_n have_v diminish_v it_o a_o little_a before_o that_o fatal_a revolution_n we_o be_v not_o to_o take_v the_o measure_n of_o it_o from_o such_o a_o calamitous_a state_n nay_o this_o story_n of_o the_o transmigration_n to_o pella_n come_v from_o no_o certain_a authority_n and_o valesius_fw-la 5._o valesius_fw-la annot._n in_o euseb_n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o hint_n his_o mistrust_n of_o it_o when_o he_o observe_v that_o eusebius_n quote_v no_o author_n and_o probable_o take_v all_o this_o matter_n from_o tradition_n which_o be_v no_o very_o certain_a way_n of_o convey_v any_o thing_n to_o posterity_n nor_o be_v it_o unlikely_a 212._o unlikely_a epiph._n haer._n nazar_n n._n 7._o id._n the_o pond_n &_o man_n n._n 15._o joseph_n scalig._n anim._n in_o euseb_n p._n 212._o that_o this_o story_n shall_v come_v from_o the_o nazarens_fw-la who_o dwell_v about_o pella_n and_o in_o the_o region_n of_o decapolis_n who_o to_o give_v themselves_o great_a credit_n may_v pretend_v to_o be_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n 107._o jerusalem_n prim._n ep_v p._n 107._o not_o long_o after_o they_o settle_v in_o the_o ruin_n of_o a_o part_n of_o that_o desolate_a city_n no_o fit_a place_n to_o entertain_v multitude_n where_o they_o have_v a_o few_o house_n and_o a_o little_a church_n and_o therefore_o one_o will_v judge_n they_o can_v not_o be_v very_o many_o the_o story_n of_o these_o house_n and_o church_n and_o several_a synagogue_n in_o mount-sion_n that_o escape_v in_o the_o first_o desolation_n be_v all_o jewish_a fable_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o our_o saviour_n prophecy_n of_o that_o city_n that_o one_o stone_n shall_v not_o be_v leave_v upon_o another_o as_o scaliger_n chron._n scaliger_n animadv_n in_o euseb_n chron._n have_v observe_v and_o any_o one_o may_v see_v it_o who_o will_v but_o read_v the_o story_n in_o epiphanius_n who_o
to_o make_v this_o little_a church_n yet_o more_o venerable_a place_n it_o in_o that_o spot_n of_o ground_n where_o the_o house_n stand_v in_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v assemble_v after_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o lord_n our_o author_n to_o be_v revenge_v of_o this_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n for_o grow_v so_o fast_o at_o the_o beginning_n and_z giving_z trouble_n to_o his_o brethren_n of_o the_o congregational_a way_n by_o those_o many_o thousand_o convert_v which_o they_o can_v not_o convenient_o bestow_v in_o one_o assembly_n resolve_v at_o last_o if_o not_o to_o extinguish_v it_o yet_o to_o reduce_v it_o to_o the_o next_o degree_n to_o utter_v dissolution_n by_o the_o edict_n of_o adrian_n 108._o adrian_n prim._n ep_v p._n 108._o which_o exclude_v all_o jew_n not_o only_o from_o jerusalem_n but_o all_o the_o territory_n round_o about_o it_o so_o that_o if_o the_o church_n then_o at_o jerusalem_n be_v either_o whole_o or_o for_o the_o great_a part_n constitute_v of_o jew_n it_o be_v either_o quite_o dissipate_v or_o great_o diminish_v and_o be_v it_o which_o he_o please_v so_o it_o be_v not_o take_v for_o a_o judgement_n upon_o it_o for_o transgress_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o congregational_a way_n and_o updo_v a_o notion_n of_o primitive_a episcopacy_n it_o be_v certain_o a_o great_a fault_n in_o the_o first_o church_n in_o the_o world_n and_o at_o the_o very_a beginning_n to_o become_v unprimitive_a to_o show_v compassion_n he_o be_v willing_a 109._o willing_a prim._n ep_v p._n 109._o to_o take_v the_o more_o favourable_a sense_n by_o which_o it_o be_v not_o quite_o dissolve_v but_o reduce_v to_o a_o very_a small_a compass_n and_o very_o few_o member_n those_o only_a of_o the_o believe_a gentile_n which_o be_v so_o few_o that_o they_o be_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v bring_v to_o account_v by_o he_o who_o give_v the_o best_a account_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o those_o day_n now_o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v all_o this_o learned_a discourse_n the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v either_o quite_o dissolve_v or_o much_o diminish_v by_o that_o edict_n that_o forbid_v the_o jew_n to_o come_v into_o that_o city_n what_o then_o be_v this_o then_o a_o instance_n to_o judge_n other_o church_n by_o when_o the_o case_n be_v singular_a and_o common_a to_o it_o with_o no_o other_o church_n what_o if_o he_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o take_v the_o other_o opinion_n that_o it_o be_v quite_o dissipate_v must_v we_o have_v conclude_v that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o christian_a congregation_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o in_o conclusion_n there_o be_v nothing_o produce_v to_o show_v whether_o it_o have_v many_o or_o but_o one_o assembly_n and_o in_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o it_o for_o some_o time_n which_o may_v not_o happen_v from_o the_o small_a number_n of_o christian_n but_o the_o loss_n of_o record_n for_o many_o city_n great_a than_o jerusalem_n of_o which_o there_o be_v little_a doubt_n to_o be_v make_v that_o they_o have_v church_n very_o early_o be_v in_o the_o same_o case_n how_o many_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n do_v we_o know_v before_o cyprian_a nor_o be_v there_o any_o account_n give_v of_o that_o church_n after_o his_o death_n until_o the_o ordination_n of_o caecilian_a it_o be_v not_o sure_o because_o the_o christian_n there_o be_v so_o few_o as_o not_o to_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v bring_v into_o account_n 9_o account_n prim._n ep_v p._n 109._o 110._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n l._n 6._o c._n 9_o it_o be_v like_o their_o number_n increase_v before_o narcissus_n be_v bishop_n there_o in_o the_o three_o age_n yet_o than_o they_o be_v not_o so_o many_o but_o that_o the_o whole_a multitude_n can_v meet_v with_o their_o bishop_n at_o the_o pascal_n vigil_n although_o this_o expression_n the_o whole_a multitude_n do_v not_o import_v so_o universal_o as_o our_o author_n will_v have_v it_o yet_o here_o it_o be_v not_o use_v by_o eusebius_n with_o any_o respect_n to_o the_o city_n but_o to_o the_o congregation_n assemble_v with_o narcissus_n for_o in_o a_o pascal_n vigil_n as_o the_o traditional_a story_n go_v the_o oil_n happen_v to_o fail_v whereupon_o the_o whole_a multitude_n be_v trouble_v i._n e._n the_o multitude_n present_a whether_o it_o be_v great_a or_o little_a whether_o it_o consist_v of_o all_o or_o not_o a_o forty_o part_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o that_o city_n can_v be_v guess_v from_o this_o passage_n 110._o passage_n prim._n ep_v p._n 110._o nay_o in_o cyrill_n time_n which_o be_v in_o the_o four_o age_n anno_fw-la 353_o it_o seem_v they_o be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v assemble_v in_o one_o place_n for_o the_o people_n as_o sozomen_n relate_v it_o astonish_v at_o a_o aparition_n in_o the_o air_n all_o leave_v their_o house_n and_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n meet_v in_o the_o church_n hist_o l._n 3._o c._n 4._o it_o shall_v be_v l._n 4._o c._n 5._o sozomen_n speak_v there_o not_o of_o the_o christian_n only_o but_o of_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n for_o astonishment_n and_o fear_n seize_v upon_o all_o and_o if_o our_o author_n will_v deal_v rigid_o with_o he_o he_o must_v find_v a_o church_n that_o may_v hold_v all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o a_o great_a and_o a_o populous_a city_n for_o such_o be_v it_o now_o grow_v by_o the_o kindness_n and_o devotion_n of_o the_o christian_a emperor_n and_o by_o the_o multitude_n of_o christian_n who_o resort_v thither_o from_o all_o part_n to_o visit_v the_o sepulchre_n and_o other_o place_n render_v venerable_a for_o have_v be_v the_o scene_n of_o some_o of_o the_o most_o important_a action_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o i_o think_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v some_o allowance_n to_o such_o general_a expression_n than_o to_o find_v a_o church_n in_o jerusalem_n at_o that_o time_n capacious_a enough_o to_o receive_v all_o the_o man_n woman_n and_o child_n of_o that_o city_n chap._n vi_o i_o have_v follow_v the_o tract_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n discourse_n through_o village_n and_o city_n from_o the_o small_a to_o the_o great_a in_o search_n of_o primitive_a episcopacy_n and_o must_v confess_v that_o he_o have_v labour_v hard_o partly_o by_o diminish_v of_o ancient_a city_n and_o especial_o by_o lessen_v the_o christian_n to_o prove_v that_o no_o bishop_n have_v in_o his_o city_n a_o great_a flock_n for_o three_o or_o almost_o four_o age_n than_o can_v assemble_v in_o one_o church_n how_o well_o he_o have_v perform_v this_o undertake_n i_o dare_v not_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o say_v be_v too_o far_o engage_v in_o the_o dispute_n to_o be_v a_o judge_n of_o his_o performance_n yet_o shall_v all_o his_o testimony_n amount_v to_o a_o full_a evidence_n of_o the_o fact_n that_o the_o great_a city_n for_o so_o many_o age_n have_v no_o more_o christian_n than_o may_v join_v with_o the_o bishop_n in_o one_o assembly_n he_o fall_v short_a of_o the_o main_a point_n which_o be_v not_o whether_o the_o bishop_n have_v more_o congregation_n than_o one_o in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o residence_n but_o whether_o in_o his_o whole_a diocese_n he_o have_v no_o more_o i_o know_v some_o bishop_n who_o reside_v in_o place_n that_o can_v scarce_o furnish_v a_o decent_a congregation_n and_o yet_o have_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o within_o their_o diocese_n and_o in_o some_o of_o our_o city_n i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o the_o whole_a people_n make_v common_a allowance_n for_o necessary_a absent_v may_v be_v contain_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o the_o cathedral_n yet_o this_o be_v but_o a_o small_a part_n of_o the_o bishop_n flock_n if_o therefore_o in_o ancient_a time_n when_o mr._n clerkson_n fancy_v there_o be_v another_o species_n of_o episcopacy_n the_o case_n be_v the_o same_o or_o not_o very_o different_a all_o the_o pain_n he_o have_v bestow_v in_o the_o reduction_n of_o city_n into_o a_o single_a congregation_n and_o all_o the_o earthquake_n and_o pestilence_n which_o he_o call_v to_o his_o assistance_n to_o lessen_v the_o number_n of_o the_o people_n may_v have_v be_v spare_v what_o country_n or_o territory_n the_o ancient_a bishop_n have_v beside_o the_o city_n where_o they_o live_v come_v now_o under_o examination_n and_o if_o it_o shall_v appear_v by_o testimony_n unexceptionable_a that_o the_o ancient_a city_n have_v large_a territory_n and_o that_o these_o territory_n be_v under_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n and_o that_o the_o people_n there_o be_v too_o numerous_a and_o too_o far_o distant_a to_o be_v able_a to_o come_v to_o the_o bishop_n church_n then_o i_o hope_v we_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o trouble_v with_o this_o new_a way_n of_o measure_v ancient_a bishopric_n by_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o city_n wall_n here_o then_o lie_v the_o stress_n of_o the_o question_n concern_v primitive_a episcopacy_n and_o i_o can_v but_o observe_v
that_o mr._n clerkson_n diligence_n be_v not_o either_o so_o great_a in_o this_o part_n or_o nothing_o can_v be_v find_v to_o give_v so_o much_o as_o a_o pretence_n to_o straighten_v the_o bound_n of_o those_o territory_n which_o be_v under_o the_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n no_o less_o than_o the_o city_n where_o he_o live_v yet_o something_o he_o think_v fit_a to_o say_v to_o this_o point_n which_o i_o be_o now_o to_o consider_v 111._o consider_v prim._n ep_v p._n 110_o 111._o it_o may_v be_v allege_v that_o not_o only_o the_o city_n and_o but_o a_o large_a territory_n belong_v to_o it_o and_o the_o village_n therein_o make_v up_o the_o bishop_n diocese_n answ_n if_o the_o christian_n in_o the_o village_n increase_v they_o beyond_o the_o capacity_n of_o personal_a communion_n it_o must_v be_v in_o the_o great_a city_n or_o else_o no_o where_n the_o consequence_n be_v not_o very_o evident_a for_o some_o very_a little_a city_n have_v great_a territory_n as_o cyrus_n where_o theodoret_n be_v bishop_n of_o which_o more_o anon_o and_o capua_n that_o be_v a_o very_a great_a city_n have_v rull_n have_v cic._n or._n contr_n rull_n once_o no_o territory_n at_o all_o as_o it_o happen_v to_o some_o other_o city_n in_o italy_n who_o territory_n the_o roman_n take_v away_o however_o let_v we_o hear_v how_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o so_o at_o carthage_n where_o all_o the_o people_n belong_v to_o cyprian_a meet_v frequent_o which_o be_v plain_a by_o a_o hundred_o passage_n in_o his_o epistle_n what_o all_o the_o people_n from_o the_o country_n parish_n the_o reader_n may_v depend_v upon_o it_o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o title_n either_o in_o the_o epistle_n or_o any_o tract_n of_o cyprian_a to_o that_o purpose_n and_o those_o passage_n that_o he_o refer_v to_o be_v only_o general_a expression_n all_o the_o people_n all_o the_o brotherhood_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v be_v already_o consider_v nor_o can_v it_o be_v conceive_v possible_a for_o though_o we_o have_v not_o the_o measure_n of_o all_o the_o region_n belong_v to_o carthage_n yet_o be_v there_o some_o hint_n that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o disprove_v this_o a_o place_n ten_o mile_n distant_a from_o that_o city_n be_v reckon_v 2._o reckon_v procop._n vand._n l._n 2._o not_o only_o in_o the_o territory_n but_o in_o the_o suburb_n of_o it_o and_o from_o the_o distance_n be_v call_v decimum_fw-la and_o it_o be_v not_o very_o likely_a if_o there_o be_v any_o christian_n there_o that_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o go_v to_o carthage_n upon_o all_o religious_a occasion_n and_o that_o at_o this_o time_n the_o place_n that_o go_v under_o the_o name_n of_o suburb_n and_o be_v at_o some_o distance_n from_o the_o city_n have_v their_o assembly_n apart_o from_o the_o city_n bishop_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v we_o may_v learn_v from_o the_o testimony_n of_o dionysius_n 11._o dionysius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d euseb_n h._n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o the_o note_n of_o valesius_fw-la anot._n valesius_fw-la ji_n qui_fw-la in_o suburbijs_fw-la illis_fw-la manebant_fw-la non_fw-la cogebantur_fw-la ad_fw-la majoris_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la conventus_fw-la accedere_fw-la vale_n anot._n that_o the_o people_n who_o dwell_v in_o remote_a suburb_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o go_v to_o the_o great_a church_n i._n e._n of_o the_o city_n and_o bethlehem_n which_o be_v but_o six_o mile_n from_o jerusalem_n and_o belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n do_v not_o go_v up_o to_o the_o bishop_n church_n so_o much_o as_o at_o easter_n as_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o jerom_n hierosol_n jerom_n hieron_n adv_fw-la joh._n hierosol_n who_o on_o that_o feast_n do_v once_o present_a some_o candidate_n for_o baptism_n to_o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o place_n yea_o in_o the_o four_o age_n it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o alexandria_n as_o our_o author_n 111._o author_n prim._n ep_v p._n 111._o fancy_n and_o refer_v we_o to_o that_o panegyrical_a assembly_n which_o athanasius_n excuse_v to_o constantius_n what_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o alexandria_n in_o that_o church_n those_o of_o 17._o of_o strab._n l._n 17._o nicopolis_n equal_a to_o a_o city_n those_o of_o 17._o of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d athan._n presb._n libel_n apud_fw-la conc._n chalc._n act._n 3._o strab._n l._n 17._o canopus_n reckon_v itself_o a_o city_n and_o twelve_o mile_n from_o alexandria_n and_o within_o that_o diocese_n what_o all_o the_o people_n of_o mareote_n 793._o mareote_n athanas_n apol._n 2._o p._n 793._o where_o there_o be_v fourteen_o parish-presbyter_n and_o thirteen_o deacon_n these_o have_v some_o ten_o village_n some_o more_o within_o their_o respective_a parish_n so_o that_o we_o may_v reckon_v upon_o near_o a_o hundred_o village_n at_o least_o in_o this_o place_n it_o be_v very_o strange_a that_o all_o these_o place_n add_v as_o a_o appendix_n to_o the_o christian_n of_o alexandria_n shall_v not_o make_v more_o than_o one_o congregation_n or_o that_o those_o people_n shall_v travel_v so_o far_o to_o assemble_v with_o their_o bishop_n when_o they_o can_v not_o promise_v themselves_o any_o room_n the_o city_n church_n be_v small_a and_o the_o great_a one_o not_o yet_o dedicate_v especial_o since_o we_o have_v show_v before_o that_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o it_o i_o be_o afraid_a if_o the_o notion_n which_o our_o author_n serve_v have_v require_v that_o all_o the_o christian_n in_o egypt_n shall_v have_v be_v no_o more_o than_o can_v have_v meet_v in_o one_o assembly_n that_o he_o will_v have_v find_v some_o panegyrical_a assembly_n shall_v have_v comprehend_v they_o all_o he_o tell_v we_o how_o he_o have_v show_v before_o that_o the_o christian_n in_o such_o city_n be_v no_o more_o in_o the_o first_o age_n than_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o a_o ordinary_a town_n such_o as_o some_o of_o our_o market-town_n when_o we_o know_v that_o not_o only_o those_o of_o the_o town_n but_o many_o village_n sometime_o near_o twenty_o belong_v to_o it_o can_v and_o do_v meet_v together_o all_o he_o have_v show_v have_v be_v examine_v and_o this_o which_o he_o add_v of_o his_o own_o knowledge_n concern_v market-town_n with_o twenty_o village_n belong_v to_o they_o i_o will_v take_v upon_o his_o credit_n though_o i_o think_v such_o instance_n very_o rare_a yet_o after_o all_o this_o will_v not_o reach_v the_o point_n in_o question_n nor_o answer_v the_o territory_n of_o ancient_a city_n which_o be_v much_o large_a than_o mr._n clerkson_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v they_o be_v not_o content_a with_o this_o he_o think_v it_o advisable_v to_o add_v something_o for_o more_o satisfaction_n 112._o satisfaction_n prim._n ep_v p._n 112._o for_o first_o either_o the_o territory_n be_v little_a and_o so_o it_o be_v indeed_o for_o the_o most_o part_n there_o be_v some_o will_v have_v it_o take_v for_o grant_v that_o the_o territory_n of_o city_n be_v very_o large_a and_o they_o have_v need_n presume_v it_o to_o be_v exceed_o large_a so_o as_o it_o may_v bear_v some_o proportion_n to_o a_o northern_a diocese_n i_o do_v not_o desire_v to_o have_v a_o thing_n take_v for_o grant_v which_o i_o can_v so_o easy_o prove_v and_o hope_v to_o do_v so_o effectual_o in_o this_o matter_n that_o there_o will_v be_v no_o place_n leave_v for_o exception_n or_o cavil_n and_o i_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o some_o territory_n of_o ancient_a city_n will_v appear_v not_o inferior_a to_o some_o of_o the_o northern_a diocese_n and_o to_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o bishopric_n of_o this_o kingdom_n which_o be_v not_o the_o least_o in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n 113._o world_n prim._n ep_v p._n 113._o the_o circuit_n of_o one_o of_o our_o country_n parish_n yea_o of_o two_o together_o they_o will_v scorn_v as_o unworthy_a the_o repute_n or_o name_n of_o a_o bishop_n diocese_n yet_o the_o territory_n of_o the_o city_n where_o the_o apostle_n plant_v church_n amount_v not_o to_o more_o if_o so_o much_o god_n forbid_v any_o shall_v scorn_v those_o bound_n which_o be_v set_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o first_o planter_n of_o christianity_n yet_o those_o upon_o who_o mr._n clerkson_n reflect_v have_v reason_n to_o scorn_v so_o undeserved_a a_o imputation_n some_o man_n be_v not_o well_o unless_o they_o can_v reproach_v their_o better_n their_o choler_n work_v upward_a and_o must_v be_v vent_v at_o their_o mouth_n or_o else_o they_o can_v live_v but_o the_o present_a question_n be_v how_o far_o those_o bound_n extend_v that_o be_v set_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n 113._o successor_n prim._n ep_v p._n 113._o shall_v we_o take_v a_o estimate_n of_o the_o territory_n of_o other_o city_n by_o that_o of_o the_o levite_n city_n why_o not_o since_o many_o of_o they_o be_v royal_a city_n and_o may_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v the_o large_a allowance_n there_o be_v many_o reason_n why_o
about_o limit_n the_o apostle_n make_v no_o new_a distribution_n but_o follow_v the_o form_n of_o the_o empire_n plant_v in_o every_o city_n a_o complete_a and_o entire_a church_n that_o consist_v not_o only_o of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o city_n but_o of_o the_o region_n belong_v to_o it_o if_o any_o be_v convert_v and_o if_o their_o distance_n or_o number_n make_v they_o incapable_a of_o repair_v to_o the_o city-church_n upon_o all_o their_o religious_a occasion_n they_o have_v congregation_n apart_o and_o subordinate_a officer_n to_o attend_v they_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o civil_a disposition_n our_o saviour_n have_v appoint_v several_a order_n in_o his_o church_n and_o the_o apostle_n propagate_a those_o and_o appoint_v some_o new_a as_o occasion_v require_v only_o as_o in_o great_a cause_n the_o country_n people_n sue_v in_o the_o city_n court_v so_o likewise_o in_o such_o cause_n of_o religion_n that_o concern_v the_o whole_a community_n such_o as_o that_o of_o receive_v in_o and_o turn_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n the_o christian_n of_o the_o territory_n be_v under_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o city-church_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o ancient_a council_n mention_v a_o territory_n belong_v to_o every_o city_n bishop_n the_o thirty_o four_o canon_n 34._o canon_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can._n ap._n 34._o of_o those_o call_v apostolic_a forbid_v a_o bishop_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n without_o the_o concurrence_n of_o his_o metropolitan_a but_o what_o relate_v to_o his_o own_o diocese_n and_o the_o territory_n under_o it_o and_o the_o nine_o of_o nice_a that_o provide_v so_o favourable_o for_o the_o puritan_n when_o they_o shall_v return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n suppose_v bishop_n to_o have_v a_o considerable_a diocese_n beside_o their_o city_n for_o by_o this_o it_o be_v order_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o puritan_n shall_v embrace_v catholic_n communion_n and_o there_o be_v another_o bishop_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o same_o city_n that_o then_o 8._o then_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can._n nicen._n 8._o the_o puritan_n shall_v either_o retain_v the_o title_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o same_o city_n if_o the_o other_o do_v think_v fit_a or_o else_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o presbyter_n but_o least_o this_o may_v have_v the_o appearance_n of_o two_o bishop_n in_o the_o same_o town_n some_o place_n be_v to_o be_v provide_v for_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v either_o a_o chorepiscopus_n or_o a_o presbyter_n in_o the_o country_n the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n forbid_v the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o territory_n to_o send_v canonical_a letter_n and_o in_o another_o gives_z the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n full_a authority_n 9_o authority_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can._n antioch_n 9_o to_o order_v ecclesiastical_a affair_n not_o only_o in_o his_o city_n but_o in_o the_o whole_a territory_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o to_o ordain_v presbyter_n and_o deacon_n to_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n within_o the_o extent_n of_o his_o diocese_n and_o in_o the_o next_o canon_n forbid_v 10._o forbid_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d can._n antioch_n 10._o the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la to_o ordain_v presbyter_n or_o deacon_n in_o the_o country_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n to_o which_o they_o and_o the_o territory_n do_v belong_v the_o council_n of_o elvira_n speak_v of_o deacon_n 77._o deacon_n diaconus_fw-la regens_fw-la plebem_fw-la can._n eliber_n 77._o that_o have_v country_n cure_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n to_o who_o they_o belong_v be_v to_o perfect_v those_o who_o be_v baptize_v by_o these_o curee_n by_o confirmation_n basil_n 192._o basil_n basil_n ep_v 192._o salute_v the_o country_n clergy_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o nicopolis_n distinct_a from_o those_o of_o the_o city_n and_o theodoret_n who_o have_v a_o diocese_n forty_o mile_n square_a reckon_v 42._o reckon_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d theod._n ep_v 42._o his_o episcopacy_n of_o divine_a institution_n and_o that_o his_o large_a territory_n as_o well_o as_o his_o city_n be_v commit_v into_o his_o hand_n by_o god_n theodosius_n bishop_n of_o synnada_n be_v say_v to_o drive_v the_o macedonian_a heretic_n not_o only_o out_o of_o his_o city_n but_o 3._o but_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d socr._n l._n 7._o c._n 3._o out_o of_o all_o his_o territory_n and_o eustathius_n 73._o eustathius_n basil_n ep_v 73._o overthrow_v all_o the_o altar_n of_o basilides_n in_o all_o the_o territory_n of_o gangrae_n and_o synesius_n write_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o ptolemais_n address_v to_o the_o people_n of_o the_o city_n and_o to_o those_o of_o the_o country_n parish_n that_o belong_v to_o it_o it_o will_v be_v a_o endless_a labour_n to_o allege_v all_o the_o instance_n of_o this_o nature_n since_o nothing_o be_v more_o obvious_a and_o occur_v more_o frequent_o in_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n i_o have_v show_v how_o great_a territory_n belong_v ancient_o to_o the_o greek_a and_o roman_a city_n how_o unlike_o their_o constitution_n be_v to_o we_o and_o especial_o in_o this_o respect_n i_o have_v also_o show_v that_o the_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a territory_n be_v the_o same_o and_o mr._n clerkson_n confess_v it_o his_o demand_n therefore_o concern_v this_o matter_n receive_v a_o full_a answer_n and_o the_o proof_n which_o he_o 11._o he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d syne_n ep_v 11._o require_v not_o without_o intimation_n of_o despair_n make_v good_a and_o beyond_o all_o reasonable_a exception_n to_o make_v this_o matter_n yet_o more_o clear_a i_o will_v instance_n in_o some_o bishopric_n who_o extent_n be_v know_v or_o so_o much_o at_o leastwise_o as_o discover_v they_o to_o be_v diocese_n consist_v of_o many_o country_n parish_n beside_o the_o city_n church_n i_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o bishopric_n of_o theodoret_n because_o the_o limit_n of_o it_o have_v be_v describe_v with_o great_a exactness_n and_o particularity_n the_o diocese_n of_o cyrus_n be_v forty_o mile_n in_o length_n and_o as_o much_o in_o breadth_n and_o theodoret_n 42._o theodoret_n theod._n ep_v 42._o proceed_v to_o describe_v it_o so_o minutely_o that_o he_o set_v down_o the_o number_n of_o acre_n together_o with_o the_o condition_n and_o tenure_n of_o the_o land_n there_o be_v fifty_o thousand_o free_a from_o any_o service_n ten_o thousand_o belong_v to_o the_o fisc_n about_o fifteen_o thousand_o more_o subject_a to_o tax_n but_o unable_a to_o pay_v according_a to_o the_o proportion_n then_o set_v so_o that_o this_o instance_n seem_v clear_a beyond_o all_o exception_n and_o as_o to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n of_o this_o territory_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o leo_n he_o say_v 113._o say_v theod._n ep_v 113._o there_o be_v eight_o hundred_o church_n in_o it_o all_o belong_v to_o his_o care_n yet_o some_o have_v endeavour_v to_o take_v off_o the_o evidence_n of_o this_o epistle_n to_o leo_n when_o it_o be_v urge_v by_o the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o worcester_n mr._n baxter_n suspect_v it_o because_o it_o come_v from_o the_o vatican_n library_n and_o mr._n clerkson_n 39_o clerkson_n no_o evid_v of_o dioc._n ep._n p._n 39_o suggest_v the_o same_o suspicion_n but_o this_o frivolous_a cavil_n have_v be_v answer_v by_o the_o same_o hand_n that_o allege_v the_o instance_n i_o will_v take_v the_o liberty_n to_o add_v only_o this_o that_o it_o happen_v fortunate_o to_o this_o epistle_n that_o it_o have_v a_o ancient_a voucher_n and_o a_o clear_a testimony_n in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o it_o be_v write_v for_o liberatus_n 12._o liberatus_n quos_fw-la secutus_fw-la theodoretus_n papae_fw-la suggessit_fw-la quanta_fw-la mala_fw-la pertulerit_fw-la rogans_fw-la ut_fw-la tali_fw-la causae_fw-la subveniretur_fw-la libre_fw-la brev._n c._n 12._o make_v mention_n of_o it_o and_o inform_v we_o that_o theodoret_n write_v to_o leo_n suggest_v how_o much_o he_o have_v suffer_v of_o dioscorus_n and_o desire_v that_o for_o the_o remedy_n of_o these_o evil_n another_o council_n may_v be_v call_v and_o 83._o and_o constat_fw-la ex_fw-la ep_n p._n 113_o 116._o garner_n in_o liber_n p._n 83._o garnerius_n in_o his_o observation_n upon_o this_o place_n direct_v we_o to_o this_o epistle_n to_o leo._n mr._n clerkson_n instead_o of_o eight_o hundred_o church_n constant_o read_v eighty_o without_o so_o much_o as_o give_v notice_n that_o it_o be_v only_o his_o conjecture_n but_o be_v the_o number_n how_o it_o will_v we_o must_v lay_v aside_o all_o thought_n of_o congregational_a episcopacy_n in_o this_o region_n another_o exception_n against_o this_o instance_n be_v offer_v by_o mr._n clerkson_n 39_o clerkson_n no_o evid_v of_o dioc._n p._n 39_o that_o this_o be_v not_o a_o diocese_n but_o a_o province_n and_o that_o theodoret_n be_v a_o metropolitan_a and_o for_o this_o he_o quote_v the_o learned_a author_n who_o testimony_n he_o pretend_v to_o answer_v although_o he_o express_o say_v that_o this_o be_v not_o to_o be_v
say_v that_o holy_a bishop_n 159._o bishop_n aug._n ep_v ad_fw-la marcellin_n 159._o bened._n 159._o germanicenses_n ad_fw-la curam_fw-la humilitatis_fw-la nostrae_fw-la pertinent_a aug._n ep_v 251._o ed._n bened._n or_o that_o i_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o pass_v the_o bound_n of_o my_o own_o dispensation_n this_o will_v be_v most_o advantageous_a to_o the_o church_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o hippo._n and_o speak_v of_o a_o place_n call_v germanicia_n in_o that_o diocese_n affirm_v e_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o care_n and_o in_o another_o place_n that_o 236._o that_o visitandarum_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ad_fw-la meam_fw-la curam_fw-la pertinentium_fw-la necessitate_v profectus_fw-la sum_fw-la vide_fw-la ep_n 74_o 212_o 236._o he_o have_v church_n under_o his_o care_n which_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o visit_v to_o diminish_v this_o bishopric_n of_o hippo_n yet_o far_o mr._n clerkson_n show_v that_o st._n austin_n be_v so_o far_o from_o have_v all_o the_o region_n under_o his_o jurisdiction_n that_o he_o have_v not_o the_o whole_a town_n the_o donatist_n have_v a_o bishop_n there_o this_o indeed_o be_v true_a of_o the_o former_a part_n of_o st._n augustin_n episcopal_a administration_n but_o after_o the_o imperial_a rescript_n which_o follow_v the_o conference_n at_o carthage_n hippo_n have_v no_o donatist_n for_o all_o return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n for_o so_o i_o think_v st._n austin_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o vincentius_n may_v most_o commodious_o be_v understand_v where_o speak_v of_o his_o former_a opinion_n which_o be_v against_o use_v any_o compulsion_n for_o reduce_v man_n to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n he_o confess_v that_o experience_n have_v alter_v his_o judgement_n in_o that_o point_n 48._o point_n aug._n ep_v 48._o the_o instance_n of_o my_o own_o city_n be_v urge_v against_o i_o which_o be_v once_o whole_o donatist_n but_o now_o convert_v to_o catholic_n unity_n by_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o imperial_a law_n which_o now_o so_o utter_o detest_v your_o pernicious_a animosity_n that_o she_o may_v seem_v never_o to_o have_v be_v infect_v with_o it_o so_o that_o after_o all_o these_o exception_n st._n augustine_n diocese_n remain_v undiminish_a caesarea_n in_o cappadocia_n have_v a_o diocese_n of_o so_o vast_a extent_n that_o few_o of_o our_o northern_a bishopric_n can_v equal_v it_o for_o basil_n the_o bishop_n of_o that_o city_n have_v sva_fw-la have_v greg._n naz._n carm._n de_fw-fr viti_fw-la sva_fw-la fifty_o chorepiscopi_fw-la in_o his_o diocese_n who_o be_v his_o deputy_n for_o the_o administration_n of_o discipline_n in_o lesser_a cause_n in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o his_o diocese_n cappadocia_n be_v 12._o be_v strab._n l._n 12._o about_o four_o hundred_o mile_n in_o length_n according_a to_o strabo_n and_o above_o two_o hundred_o in_o breadth_n caesarea_n be_v place_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o this_o great_a country_n and_o be_v at_o first_o the_o metropolis_n of_o the_o whole_a and_o when_o the_o country_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o province_n the_o great_a share_n remain_v under_o the_o ancient_a and_o great_a metropolis_n yet_o in_o this_o tract_n which_o can_v be_v conceive_v less_o than_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o mile_n there_o be_v but_o leon._n but_o colligere_fw-la feci_fw-la episcopos_fw-la sub_fw-la i_o constitutos_fw-la sunt_fw-la enim_fw-la duo_fw-la ep._n capp_n pr._n ad_fw-la leon._n two_o bishopric_n beside_o that_o of_o caesarea_n i._n e._n thermae_n and_o nyssa_n basil_n 264._o basil_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bas_n ep_v 264._o excuse_v himself_o to_o eusebius_n bishop_n of_o samosata_n for_o not_o write_v to_o he_o by_o some_o great_a person_n who_o have_v be_v in_o caesarea_n because_o he_o be_v then_o upon_o his_o visitation_n and_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v of_o a_o country_n parish_n of_o his_o diocese_n call_v venesa_n where_o he_o ordain_v one_o glycerius_n a_o deacon_n to_o assist_v 412._o assist_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d ep_v 412._o the_o presbyter_n of_o that_o parish_n and_o he_o reprove_v the_o chorepiscopi_fw-la of_o his_o diocese_n for_o suffer_v the_o presbyter_n of_o country_n parish_n to_o make_v what_o inferior_a church-officer_n they_o please_v and_o therefore_o order_v 181._o order_v ep._n 181._o a_o list_n of_o all_o the_o inferior_a officer_n of_o country_n church_n to_o be_v bring_v to_o he_o and_o that_o none_o be_v make_v thereafter_o without_o his_o consent_n there_o be_v likewise_o another_o village_n call_v dacora_n mention_v by_o sozomen_n 27._o sozomen_n soz._n l._n 7._o c._n 27._o in_o the_o territory_n of_o caesarea_n where_o eunomius_n 10._o eunomius_n philostorg_n l._n 10._o be_v bear_v and_o bury_v and_o julian_n order_v 4._o order_v soz._n l._n 5._o c._n 4._o a_o search_n to_o be_v make_v for_o all_o the_o good_n not_o only_o of_o the_o church_n in_o caesarea_n but_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o diocese_n tyana_n the_o metropolis_n of_o the_o second_o cappadocia_n have_v a_o considerable_a diocese_n belong_v to_o it_o euphrantas_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n mention_n 5._o mention_n praedium_fw-la autem_fw-la quod_fw-la dicitur_fw-la pasa_n duodecim_fw-la milliarijs_fw-la distat_fw-la tyanensis_fw-la metropoleos_n &_o sub_fw-la eadem_fw-la civitate_fw-la est_fw-la usque_fw-la hodie_fw-la ap._n conc._n c._n p._n 2._o coll._n 5._o one_o george_n of_o pasa_n who_o live_v in_o gregory_n nazianzen_n time_n and_o note_n that_o pasa_n be_v a_o country_n place_n twelve_o mile_n from_o tyana_n and_o belong_v to_o that_o city_n say_v he_o to_o this_o very_a day_n but_o this_o diocese_n must_v be_v much_o more_o considerable_a than_o this_o passage_n speak_v as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o cappadocia_n the_o whole_a country_n as_o i_o note_v before_o be_v about_o four_o hundred_o mile_n in_o length_n and_o two_o in_o breadth_n which_o make_v a_o sum_n of_o eight_o hundred_o square_a mile_n now_o in_o all_o the_o country_n there_o be_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o five_o age_n but_o eleven_o bishopric_n and_o then_o it_o be_v all_o christian_n so_o that_o every_o bishop_n one_o with_o another_o may_v have_v a_o diocese_n that_o want_v not_o much_o of_o a_o hundred_o mile_n square_a which_o can_v be_v match_v by_o but_o few_o in_o our_o country_n beside_o lincoln_n but_o because_o the_o division_n of_o dioceses_n be_v general_o unequal_a as_o the_o territory_n of_o city_n be_v some_o of_o these_o will_v fall_v out_o to_o be_v vast_o great_a and_z other_o but_o of_o moderate_a extent_n nor_o be_v there_o any_o place_n for_o suspicion_n that_o bishopric_n be_v sink_v or_o unite_v in_o this_o country_n for_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o that_o that_o several_a of_o these_o few_o be_v erect_v in_o the_o four_o century_n sasima_n be_v make_v a_o bishopric_n by_o basil_n which_o before_o belong_v to_o caesarea_n or_o tyana_n for_o gregory_n expression_n be_v ambiguous_a from_o tyana_n it_o be_v two_o and_o thirty_o mile_n distant_a from_o caesarea_n above_o a_o hundred_o and_o upon_o second_o thought_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o rather_o to_o belong_v to_o the_o first_o for_o it_o be_v near_o to_o it_o and_o within_o its_o province_n and_o give_v up_o by_o basil_n who_o desire_v 88_o desire_v bas_n ep_v 88_o anthimus_n the_o new_a metropolitan_a to_o take_v care_n of_o it_o nazianzus_n too_o be_v a_o bishopric_n raise_v in_o the_o four_o century_n as_o we_o may_v learn_v from_o nazianzen_n patr._n nazianzen_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d greg._n naz._n or._n 19_o in_o patr._n who_o say_v that_o the_o place_n have_v but_o one_o bishop_n before_o his_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n one_o john_n subscribe_v 28._o subscribe_v johannes_n episc_n totius_fw-la lesbi_n iren._n trage_v contest_v quorund_fw-mi ep._n sub_fw-la 28._o himself_o bishop_n of_o all_o lesbus_n the_o island_n according_a to_o strabo_n 13._o strabo_n strab._n l._n 13._o be_v eleven_o hundred_o furlong_n which_o want_v not_o much_o of_o seven_o score_n mile_n in_o compass_n nor_o have_v this_o bishop_n sum_v up_o all_o his_o title_n for_o his_o successor_n florentius_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n write_v 1●_n write_v florentius_n episcopus_fw-la lesbi_n tenedi_n prosilenes_n aegialorum_n per_fw-la euelpistum_fw-la chorepiscopum_fw-la subscripsi_fw-la conc._n chalc._n act._n 1●_n himself_o bishop_n of_o several_a other_o island_n now_o if_o one_o city_n can_v have_v territory_n enough_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o congregational_a antiquary_n to_o make_v a_o large_a diocese_n two_o ancient_a city_n with_o their_o territory_n may_v sure_o yield_v a_o diocese_n of_o many_o congregation_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n 1._o ephesus_n conc._n eph._n par_fw-fr 2._o act._n 1._o there_o be_v several_a bishop_n who_o have_v two_o city_n within_o their_o diocese_n timothy_n be_v bishop_n of_o fermissus_n and_o eudocias_n athanasius_n be_v bishop_n of_o diveltus_n and_o sozopolis_n and_o in_o europa_n there_o be_v many_o instance_n of_o this_o nature_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o province_n
have_v already_o make_v that_o all_o the_o people_n shall_v be_v present_a at_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n that_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o examine_v the_o state_n of_o the_o penitent_n that_o he_o be_v to_o preach_v to_o all_o the_o brethren_n that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o communion_n table_n in_o a_o diocese_n all_o these_o have_v be_v answer_v already_o and_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o many_o instance_n as_o well_o as_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o country_n have_v distinct_a congregation_n and_o settle_a presbyter_n to_o attend_v they_o all_o in_o subordination_n to_o the_o city_n bishop_n that_o their_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v administer_v there_o by_o those_o presbyter_n that_o as_o for_o discipline_n and_o confirmation_n the_o bishop_n visit_v those_o place_n in_o person_n that_o those_o congregation_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o repair_v to_o the_o city-church_n so_o much_o as_o on_o easter_n or_o the_o most_o solemn_a festival_n these_o thing_n be_v as_o plain_a as_o word_n can_v express_v athanasius_n basil_n augustin_n and_o several_a other_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o visitation_n and_o jerom_n lucif_n jerom_n hieron_n cont._n lucif_n can_v deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o ancient_a custom_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v visit_v the_o village_n and_o burrough_n and_o remote_a place_n of_o his_o diocese_n to_o confirm_v those_o who_o have_v be_v baptize_v there_o by_o presbyter_n or_o deacon_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o precarious_a and_o more_o destitute_a of_o the_o appearance_n of_o truth_n than_o the_o deduction_n our_o author_n make_v of_o the_o progress_n of_o diocesan_n episcopacy_n and_o the_o rise_v of_o it_o from_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o congregational_a model_n 191._o model_n prim._n ep_v p._n 191._o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o country_n parish_n will_v be_v strive_v to_o get_v another_o parish_n under_o he_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n can._n 46._o take_v notice_n of_o such_o bishop_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o direct_o against_o his_o purpose_n than_o that_o canon_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o such_o country_n place_n as_o have_v bishop_n be_v of_o new_a erection_n that_o they_o have_v be_v ever_o before_o part_n of_o a_o great_a diocese_n 46._o diocese_n quae_fw-la exempta_fw-la de_fw-la fasce_fw-la multarum_fw-la sola_fw-la meruit_fw-la honorem_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la suscipere_fw-la can._n 46._o and_o take_v out_o of_o a_o multitude_n which_o belong_v all_o to_o one_o bishop_n that_o some_o of_o these_o new_a bishop_n challenge_v other_o part_n of_o the_o diocese_n out_o of_o which_o their_o bishopric_n be_v take_v beside_o that_o which_o be_v appoint_v they_o so_o that_o the_o design_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n be_v defeat_v by_o his_o own_o evidence_n for_o whereas_o he_o will_v suggest_v that_o dioceses_n do_v rise_v by_o the_o encroachment_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o parish_n upon_o another_o and_o by_o join_v parish_n to_o parish_n the_o quite_o contrary_a appear_v from_o the_o place_n allege_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o one_o parish_n as_o he_o call_v he_o be_v raise_v by_o crumble_a of_o ancient_a diocese_n and_o that_o the_o other_o parish_n which_o he_o be_v say_v to_o challenge_v be_v not_o such_o a_o one_o as_o have_v a_o parish_n bishop_n to_o itself_o but_o be_v part_n of_o a_o diocese_n consist_v of_o many_o such_o and_o that_o this_o large_a bishopric_n be_v the_o ancient_a the_o small_a a_o innovation_n i_o perceive_v that_o conscience_n do_v not_o always_o operate_v alike_o in_o those_o who_o pretend_v so_o great_a niceness_n for_o while_o they_o take_v offence_n and_o start_n at_o a_o trifle_n they_o make_v no_o scruple_n of_o sin_n of_o unfaithfulness_n and_o represent_v that_o as_o truth_n and_o reality_n which_o in_o their_o own_o conscience_n they_o know_v to_o be_v otherwise_o 191._o otherwise_o prim._n ep_v p._n 191._o when_o a_o bishop_n have_v part_n of_o a_o city_n he_o be_v unsatisfied_a till_o he_o have_v get_v the_o whole_a thus_o flavianus_n at_o antioch_n will_v not_o suffer_v a_o bishop_n to_o be_v make_v to_o succeed_v evagrius_n that_o he_o may_v have_v the_o city_n entire_a to_o himself_o one_o may_v be_v apt_a to_o imagine_v that_o in_o ancient_a time_n antioch_n be_v divide_v between_o many_o bishop_n and_o that_o this_o flavianus_n be_v the_o first_o ambitious_a man_n who_o will_v have_v the_o city_n entire_a to_o himself_o whereas_o before_o the_o schism_n that_o distract_v the_o church_n of_o that_o place_n the_o city_n have_v ever_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n but_o the_o arrian_n have_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o public_a church_n and_o be_v establish_v there_o by_o authority_n the_o catholic_n party_n which_o be_v very_o low_o there_o at_o that_o time_n happen_v 15._o happen_v socr._n l._n 3._o c._n 6._o 9_o soz._n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o to_o be_v divide_v meletius_n be_v bishop_n of_o one_o part_n and_o paulinus_n of_o the_o other_o this_o be_v against_o the_o rule_n and_o constant_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v agree_v to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o this_o irregularity_n by_o unite_n all_o when_o one_o shall_v die_v under_o the_o survivor_n flavianus_n break_v this_o agreement_n for_o when_o meletius_n die_v he_o procure_v himself_o to_o be_v make_v bishop_n in_o his_o stead_n against_o paulinus_n who_o be_v the_o survivor_n and_o he_o likewise_o die_a his_o party_n choose_v evagrius_n in_o opposition_n to_o flavianus_n who_o when_o that_o competitor_n be_v dead_a endeavour_v to_o hinder_v the_o ordination_n of_o a_o successor_n and_o this_o be_v the_o story_n which_o mr._n clerkson_n think_v fit_a to_o bring_v as_o a_o proof_n how_o a_o bishop_n of_o a_o part_n of_o a_o city_n be_v unsatisfied_a till_o he_o have_v the_o whole_a as_o if_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n or_o allow_v practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n to_o divide_v a_o city_n between_o many_o bishop_n 192._o bishop_n prim._n ep_v p._n 192._o when_o a_o bishop_n have_v a_o great_a city_n yet_o some_o village_n in_o the_o vicinity_n he_o can_v not_o endure_v shall_v be_v exempt_a from_o his_o jurisdiction_n majuma_n find_v this_o to_o its_o trouble_n this_o have_v always_o be_v under_o gaza_n until_o it_o be_v make_v a_o city_n by_o constantine_n so_o that_o its_o separation_n from_o the_o diocese_n of_o gaza_n be_v the_o innovation_n it_o be_v dependence_n upon_o that_o bishop_n be_v its_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a state_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n do_v not_o desire_v to_o make_v a_o new_a accession_n to_o his_o bishopric_n but_o to_o recover_v what_o have_v be_v take_v from_o it_o 192._o it_o prim._n ep_v p._n 192._o not_o satisfy_v with_o one_o city_n some_o will_v have_v two_o so_o four_o bishop_n in_o europa_n a_o province_n of_o thrace_n get_v each_o of_o they_o two_o city_n under_o he_o yet_o be_v it_o positive_o affirm_v of_o those_o city_n that_o they_o have_v always_o belong_v to_o one_o bishop_n this_o be_v their_o primitive_a constitution_n it_o be_v possible_a some_o of_o they_o be_v but_o late_o make_v city_n and_o have_v be_v village_n before_o in_o the_o territory_n of_o another_o city_n they_o continue_v in_o their_o ecclesiastical_a subjection_n after_o they_o be_v make_v city_n yet_o these_o be_v afterward_o part_v so_o far_o be_v succeed_v age_n from_o reduce_v the_o number_n of_o bishopric_n for_o arcadiopolis_n which_o be_v join_v to_o byzia_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o there_o affirm_v to_o have_v be_v so_o immemorial_o under_o justinian_n have_v a_o bishop_n of_o its_o own_o as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o subscription_n sacr._n subscription_n not._n graec._n leon._n in_o append._n geogr._n sacr._n of_o the_o five_o synod_n panium_n join_v to_o heraclea_n be_v afterward_o divide_v from_o it_o and_o make_v a_o distinct_a bishopric_n have_v a_o bishop_n of_o its_o own_o in_o the_o council_n under_o menna_n 2._o menna_n conc._n c._n p._n sub_fw-la menna_n act._n 2._o so_o that_o this_o instance_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n prove_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o purpose_n for_o which_o it_o be_v produce_v that_o which_o follow_v concern_v the_o encroachment_n of_o one_o metropolitan_a upon_o the_o province_n of_o another_o i_o be_o not_o concern_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o since_o it_o do_v not_o belong_v to_o the_o present_a question_n have_v abuse_v so_o many_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a writer_n direct_o against_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o author_n to_o countenance_v his_o dream_n of_o congregational_a episcopacy_n he_o do_v not_o think_v fit_a to_o conclude_v without_o 197._o without_o prim._n ep_v p._n 197._o take_v notice_n what_o thought_n some_o of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o eminent_a bishop_n of_o the_o four_o and_o five_o age_n have_v of_o a_o very_a large_a bishopric_n and_o thereby_o he_o think_v he_o shall_v perceive_v that_o if_o
the_o church_n can_v have_v be_v order_v according_a to_o the_o principle_n desire_n and_o endeavour_n of_o the_o most_o pious_a and_o conscientious_a their_o diocese_n will_v not_o have_v be_v so_o execessive_o numerous_a in_o the_o four_o or_o five_o age_n above_o what_o they_o be_v in_o the_o three_o by_o dioceses_n be_v numerous_a i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v the_o number_n of_o people_n belong_v to_o each_o diocese_n for_o otherwise_o it_o will_v destroy_v what_o he_o contend_v for_o dioceses_n be_v by_o so_o much_o more_o large_a as_o they_o be_v less_o numerous_a chrysostom_n he_o say_v may_v satisfy_v we_o here_o what_o in_o his_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n be_v he_o against_o a_o large_a bishopric_n breed_o in_o the_o diocese_n of_o antioch_n than_o which_o there_o be_v few_o great_a in_o the_o world_n and_o receive_v the_o order_n of_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n in_o that_o church_n afterward_o remove_v from_o thence_o to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o imperial_a city_n have_v so_o many_o congregation_n in_o the_o city_n so_o many_o parish_n in_o the_o country_n such_o a_o number_n of_o province_n under_o his_o jurisdiction_n as_o make_v the_o better_a part_n of_o the_o eastern_a empire_n do_v he_o express_v his_o conscience_n against_o a_o very_a large_a bishopric_n sure_o a_o person_n of_o so_o exalt_a eloquence_n can_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o such_o a_o solecism_n his_o chair_n will_v have_v bear_v testimony_n against_o he_o and_o refute_v all_o his_o sermon_n if_o this_o be_v his_o conscience_n why_o do_v he_o not_o divide_v why_o do_v he_o not_o appoint_v one_o bishop_n in_o sycae_n another_o in_o hestiae_n where_o constantine_n have_v build_v a_o church_n that_o may_v have_v become_v a_o bishop_n or_o if_o these_o place_n be_v too_o near_o why_o do_v he_o not_o erect_v new_a bishopric_n in_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o his_o territory_n or_o in_o his_o province_n since_o as_o patriarch_n he_o have_v sufficient_a authority_n to_o make_v what_o number_n of_o bishop_n he_o please_v he_o depose_v indeed_o a_o great_a number_n of_o unworthy_a bishop_n and_o ordain_v other_o in_o their_o place_n but_o there_o be_v no_o account_n of_o any_o new_a erection_n of_o his_o in_o market_n town_n and_o village_n and_o his_o friend_n make_v bold_a to_o censure_n theophilus_n for_o make_v bishop_n in_o small_a place_n where_o there_o have_v be_v none_o before_o it_o be_v therefore_o very_o marvellous_a that_o the_o conscience_n of_o so_o great_a and_o holy_a a_o person_n shall_v declare_v against_o his_o own_o practice_n and_o condemn_v a_o large_a bishopric_n while_o himself_o be_v possess_v of_o one_o of_o the_o large_a in_o world_n without_o discover_v the_o least_o desire_n or_o endeavour_v to_o part_v it_o between_o several_a congregational_a pastor_n as_o for_o his_o principle_n he_o have_v no_o other_o in_o this_o matter_n than_o the_o rule_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n one_o city_n according_a to_o his_o principle_n can_v have_v but_o one_o bishop_n and_o therefore_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v startle_v at_o st._n paul_n direction_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o deacon_n of_o philippi_n what_o more_o bishop_n than_o one_o say_v he_o in_o one_o city_n no_o by_o no_o mean_n therefore_o he_o conclude_v they_o be_v receive_v not_o bishop_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n in_o his_o time_n but_o presbyter_n only_o and_o therefore_o according_a to_o his_o principle_n if_o a_o city_n be_v never_o so_o great_a it_o ought_v to_o have_v but_o one_o bishop_n however_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o chrysostom_n say_v in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o mr._n clerkson_n tell_v i_o say_v that_o excellent_a bishop_n savil._n bishop_n chrys_n in_o act._n 3._o p._n 655._o ed._n savil._n what_o can_v a_o multitude_n avail_v we_o will_v thou_o understand_v that_o the_o desirable_a multitude_n be_v the_o holy_a not_o the_o many_o what_o care_v i_o for_o the_o multitude_n what_o advantage_n be_v in_o they_o but_o here_o be_v no_o comparison_n between_o a_o great_a bishopric_n and_o a_o small_a as_o such_o but_o between_o many_o bad_a and_o few_o good_a and_o in_o this_o case_n chrysostom_n judgement_n can_v be_v contest_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o we_o be_v to_o go_v by_o weight_n not_o by_o number_n the_o people_n of_o constantinople_n as_o they_o be_v exceed_o numerous_a so_o they_o be_v very_o dissolute_a and_o this_o holy_a bishop_n flame_v against_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o place_n with_o a_o zeal_n become_v his_o character_n he_o be_v not_o content_v only_o to_o reprove_v and_o to_o rebuke_v with_o authority_n but_o threaten_v to_o use_v the_o utmost_a of_o his_o spiritual_a censure_n against_o those_o that_o disgrace_a christianity_n by_o their_o wicked_a life_n in_o this_o resolution_n of_o reform_v his_o people_n he_o bid_v defiance_n to_o all_o discouragement_n and_o opposition_n some_o urge_v the_o multitude_n of_o offender_n against_o he_o that_o too_o rough_a deal_n may_v drive_v they_o to_o join_v with_o sectary_n but_o this_o do_v not_o at_o all_o abate_v the_o resolution_n of_o the_o bishop_n he_o scorn_v the_o multitude_n upon_o this_o account_n and_o cry_n what_o care_v i_o for_o a_o multitude_n it_o be_v far_o from_o his_o intention_n to_o cast_v off_o this_o multitude_n or_o to_o divide_v they_o into_o several_a distinct_a congregation_n under_o other_o bishop_n but_o his_o design_n be_v to_o reform_v their_o life_n and_o to_o build_v up_o and_o adorn_v the_o church_n commit_v to_o he_o with_o many_o that_o be_v good_a with_o a_o multitude_n not_o only_o numerous_a but_o approve_v and_o for_o this_o purpose_n he_o offer_v himself_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o be_v content_a to_o be_v cut_v off_o so_o that_o he_o may_v gain_v many_o to_o christ_n if_o chrysostom_n have_v proceed_v upon_o the_o principle_n of_o mr._n clerkson_n he_o must_v have_v give_v his_o discourse_n another_o turn_n and_o say_v that_o since_o one_o bishop_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o so_o great_a a_o people_n and_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o person_n be_v a_o charge_n more_o than_o one_o can_v well_o discharge_v it_o be_v fit_a that_o you_o choose_v yourselves_o pastor_n after_o your_o own_o heart_n and_o enter_v into_o covenant_n with_o they_o for_o this_o great_a dissoluteness_n proceed_v from_o the_o excessive_a greatness_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o the_o disproportion_n that_o be_v between_o it_o and_o the_o ability_n of_o a_o single_a shepherd_n for_o this_o diocesan_n way_n be_v a_o innovation_n and_o raise_v upon_o the_o ruin_n of_o ancient_a discipline_n wherefore_o separate_v yourselves_o for_o i_o will_v not_o undertake_v the_o charge_n of_o above_o a_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o soul_n to_o this_o effect_n he_o must_v have_v express_v his_o conscience_n if_o his_o principle_n have_v be_v the_o same_o with_o mr._n clerkson_n but_o he_o on_o the_o contrary_a lay_n claim_v to_o the_o whole_a flock_n numerous_a and_o disorder_a as_o it_o be_v he_o think_v himself_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o endeavour_v the_o reformation_n of_o it_o and_o to_o use_v fullness_n of_o episcopal_a authority_n to_o reduce_v they_o he_o do_v not_o complain_v that_o they_o be_v many_o but_o that_o they_o be_v unprofitable_a will_v they_o but_o reform_v their_o life_n let_v they_o be_v as_o numerous_a as_o they_o please_v for_o the_o great_a their_o number_n the_o great_a will_v be_v his_o joy_n so_o far_o be_v chrysostom_n from_o express_v his_o conscience_n against_o large_a bishopric_n in_o the_o place_n cite_v by_o mr._n clerkson_n nor_o do_v his_o other_o argument_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o sermon_n of_o chrysostom_n come_v any_o thing_n near_o to_o the_o point_n the_o episcopate_n say_v he_o 204._o he_o prim._n ep_v p._n 203_o 204._o be_v so_o call_v from_o the_o inspect_v all_o he_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o overseer_n of_o all_o bear_v the_o burden_n of_o all_o he_o have_v need_n of_o many_o thousand_o eye_n he_o ought_v to_o go_v the_o round_n night_n and_o day_n more_o than_o any_o commander_n in_o a_o army_n we_o must_v give_v account_n of_o all_o their_o soul_n when_o we_o have_v be_v defective_a in_o any_o thing_n i_o wonder_v if_o any_o bishop_n can_v ever_o be_v save_v consider_v the_o greatness_n of_o the_o threaten_a and_o their_o negligence_n all_o this_o be_v very_o true_a but_o not_o to_o our_o author_n purpose_n bishop_n be_v certain_o accountable_a for_o those_o who_o perish_v by_o their_o neglect_n of_o their_o proper_a office_n but_o then_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o general_a overseer_n be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o a_o subordinate_a office_n a_o parish_n presbyter_n will_v not_o be_v condemn_v for_o not_o perform_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o master_n of_o a_o family_n nor_o a_o bishop_n for_o not_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o presbyter_n to_o all_o the_o particular_n of_o his_o diocese_n but_o these_o word_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v with_o
ordain_v and_o if_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v presume_v against_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o particular_a the_o church_n of_o those_o time_n will_v not_o only_o have_v declare_v the_o ordination_n null_n but_o a_o prodigy_n and_o think_v that_o antichrist_n be_v at_o hand_n and_o the_o world_n draw_v towards_o a_o end_n when_o such_o new_a and_o unexampled_a confusion_n be_v permit_v to_o arise_v what_o sentence_n shall_v we_o think_v will_v they_o have_v pronounce_v upon_o presbyterian_a ordination_n when_o they_o do_v not_o stick_v 73._o stick_v can._n nic._n 9_o 10_o 16._o can._n ant._n 73._o to_o rescind_v order_n confer_v by_o bishop_n against_o the_o canon_n and_o establish_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o some_o case_n to_o 19_o to_o nic._n can._n 19_o re-ordain_a aerius_n who_o declare_v there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n be_v represent_v by_o epiphanius_n 3_o epiphanius_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d epiph._n haer._n 74._o n._n 1._o 3_o as_o a_o prodigy_n and_o his_o opinion_n madness_n though_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o his_o ordination_n but_o the_o case_n of_o the_o ordination_n of_o our_o dissenter_n be_v peculiar_a and_o they_o do_v foreign_a church_n great_a wrong_n when_o they_o concern_v they_o in_o their_o quarrel_n for_o first_o the_o independent_o have_v no_o root_n of_o order_n but_o their_o pastor_n be_v of_o lay_v original_a extraction_n the_o presbyterian_o have_v ordination_n from_o presbyter_n not_o only_o without_o but_o in_o opposition_n to_o bishop_n against_o all_o the_o establish_a rule_n of_o this_o church_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o country_n as_o well_o as_o practise_v of_o ancient_a church_n and_o if_o upon_o this_o account_n we_o pronounce_v they_o void_a we_o do_v no_o more_o than_o what_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n abroad_o will_v do_v in_o the_o like_a case_n if_o some_o deacon_n or_o layman_n will_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o ordain_v pastor_n in_o the_o french_a church_n for_o separate_v congregation_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o receive_a discipline_n settle_v in_o their_o general_a synod_n i_o will_v appeal_v to_o any_o minister_n of_o those_o church_n whether_o he_o hold_v such_o a_o ordination_n valid_a and_o yet_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o those_o church_n layman_n may_v confer_v order_n in_o some_o case_n as_o appear_v 2._o appear_v hist_o eccles_n t._n 1._o l._n 2._o by_o the_o first_o ordination_n in_o paris_n where_o there_o be_v no_o presbyter_n present_a and_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o beza_n 4._o beza_n hist_o eccles_n t._n 1._o l._n 4._o in_o the_o conference_n of_o poissy_n nay_o though_o a_o presbyter_n depose_v by_o their_o synod_n shall_v take_v upon_o he_o to_o ordain_v i_o still_o appeal_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o those_o church_n whether_o they_o will_v account_v the_o order_n valid_a if_o we_o therefore_o do_v judge_v such_o ordination_n here_o to_o be_v nullity_n because_o administer_v by_o subordinate_a officer_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n in_o opposition_n to_o their_o superior_n and_o against_o the_o practice_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n we_o can_v be_v think_v singular_a in_o this_o judgement_n since_o all_o ancient_a church_n will_v have_v do_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o all_o the_o protestant_a church_n in_o europe_n in_o the_o like_a case_n will_v follow_v our_o example_n it_o be_v in_o vain_a to_o cite_v jerom_n and_o chrysostom_n to_o lessen_v the_o difference_n between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o presbyter_n because_o both_o may_v do_v almost_o all_o the_o same_o thing_n yet_o be_v ordination_n still_o except_v and_o account_v the_o peculiar_a prerogative_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o though_o in_o some_o church_n presbyter_n do_v assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o ordain_v presbyter_n which_o be_v likewise_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o church_n yet_o be_v there_o no_o instance_n of_o their_o ordain_v without_o a_o bishop_n finis_fw-la book_n print_v for_o james_n adamson_n i._o vita_fw-la reginaldi_n poli_fw-fr cardinalis_fw-la ac_fw-la cantuariensis_n archiepiscopi_fw-la &_o acta_fw-la disceptationis_fw-la inter_fw-la legatos_fw-la angliae_fw-la &_o galliae_fw-la in_o concilio_n constantiensi_fw-la de_fw-la utriusque_fw-la gentis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la &_o praerogativa_fw-la in_fw-la conciliorum_fw-la tomis_n desiderata_fw-la libri_fw-la rarissimi_fw-la olim_fw-la quidem_fw-la editi_fw-la sed_fw-la paucis_fw-la noti_fw-la ac_fw-la nullis_fw-la facile_fw-la obvii_fw-la octavo_fw-la ii_o pauli_n colomesii_n observationes_fw-la sacrae_fw-la editio_fw-la secunda_fw-la auctior_fw-la &_o emendatior_fw-la accedunt_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la paralipomena_fw-la de_fw-la scriptoribus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la &_o passio_fw-la sancti_fw-la victoris_fw-la massiliensis_n ab_fw-la eodem_fw-la emendata_fw-la editio_fw-la quarta_fw-la &_o ultima_fw-la long_o auctior_fw-la &_o emendatior_fw-la octavo_fw-la iii_o the_o travel_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr thevenot_n into_o the_o levant_n in_o three_o part_n viz._n 1._o into_o turkey_n 2._o persia_n 3._o the_o east-indies_n in_o folio_n iu_o mr._n chillingworth_n book_n call_v the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n make_v more_o general_o useful_a by_o omit_v personal_n contest_v but_o insert_v whatsoever_o concern_v the_o common_a cause_n of_o protestant_n or_o defend_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o a_o exact_a table_n of_o content_n and_o a_o addition_n of_o some_o genuine_a piece_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n never_n before_o print_v viz._n against_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n transubstantiation_n tradition_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o account_n of_o what_o move_v the_o author_n to_o turn_v papist_n with_o his_o confutation_n of_o the_o say_a motive_n in_o quarto_n v._o a_o treatise_n of_o the_o celibacy_n of_o the_o clergy_n wherein_o its_o rise_n and_o progress_n be_v historical_o consider_v quarto_fw-la vi_o a_o treatise_n prove_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n write_v by_o reginald_n peacock_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n before_o the_o reformation_n about_o the_o year_n 1450._o vii_o doubt_n concern_v the_o roman_a infallibility_n 1._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v it_o 2._o whether_o jesus_n christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n ever_o recommend_v it_o 3._o whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n know_v or_o use_v that_o way_n of_o decide_v controversy_n viii_o a_o brief_a historical_a account_n of_o the_o behaviour_n of_o the_o jesuit_n and_o their_o faction_n for_o the_o first_o twenty_o five_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n with_o a_o epistle_n of_o w._n watson_n a_o secular_a priest_n show_v how_o they_o be_v think_v of_o by_o other_o romanist_n of_o that_o time_n quarto_fw-la ix_o a_o brief_a examination_n of_o the_o present_a roman_n catholic_n faith_n contain_v in_o pope_n pius_fw-la his_o new_a creed_n by_o the_o scripture_n ancient_a father_n and_o their_o own_o modern_a writer_n in_o quarto_n